Expository Thoughts On Mark J. C. Ryle
Expository Thoughts On Mark J. C. Ryle
Expository Thoughts On Mark J. C. Ryle
sir
'
-^:'
'""V
''
Digitized by
in
tine
Internet Arcliive
2007
witli
funding from
IVIicrosoft
Corporation
littp://www.arcliive.org/details/expositorytliougliOOryleiala
EXPOSITOEY THOUGHTS.
ST.
MAEK.
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS
ON THE GOSPELS.
FAMILY AND PRIVATE USE.
s
WITH THE TEXT COMPLETE,
805
^vi)
mans trpbaaittTU
gialts.
BY THE EEV.
Author of
J.
C,
EYLE,
B. A.,
ST.
MARK.
IPSWICH:
WILLIAM HUNT, STEAM PRESS, TAVERN
STREET;.
MDCCCUX.
PREFACE.
The volume now
Expository Thoughts on
St.
Matthew."
The nature
of the
prefece to the volume on St. Matthew, that cessary to say anything on the subject.
to repeat that the reader
It
may
to find in these
commentary on
The
more
The main
difference
it,
The
have thrown
any new
light
on the
difficulties in St.
Mark.
But
I can
St.
Mark,
have
me
which
had
in view,
when
I first
2000058
IV
Gospels.
I
PREFACE.
may
be
iiseful to
prayers,
those who something which may the read them, and something which may poor and
desire to
to
aid all readers of the Bible in the private study of God's Word.
have dwelt
I
have pur-
posely avoided
all topics
which
may
I
not understand.
all
who want
communications which
expositions too long.
various that
it
In such households
a few verses of
Scriptvu-e,
As
who
much
and yet
desire to read
my
remedy
in their
own
hands.
and they
they please.
PRKFAjCE.
V
St.
Mark, I
my
any
light on St.
feel
obliged
to say, that, in
few commentators,
deserves.
St.
It has
abridgement of
Matthew.
believe to be
an entire mistake.
The only
large separate
Commentary on
is
St.
Mark
that I
It is a
less
work
which from
than
it
and
size, is
much
known
is
deserves.
said
of London.
Some account
of this book
Petter's
may
Commentary was
by him
in
own
congregation.
He
began to preach on
ing on
it
it,
June
7th, 1618,
little
May
28th, 1643.
margin.
Protest-
and
spiritual.
names.
n
must
the
also
PREFACE.
if
we may judge by
His
faults of style
lived,
number and
day in which he
But
for laborious
no work on
St.
Mark
which, in
my
opinion,
bears
is
comparison with
Fetter's.
Like Goliah's
none
like it."
Mark "
may
please
God
to use the
volume
of
for
His glory.
It
many
is
many
interruptions.
No
I
one
more conscious of
than myself.
if I
But
can
my
chief desire,
know anything
of my
to
and aU
my
writings, is to lead
my readers
Him,
to repentance
and
holiness, to the
volume
in
any one
case,
it will
Helmingham
Rectory,
Sep., 1857.
TABLE OF CONTENTS.
Mark.
I. 1
8,
20.
......
the
Baptist's
and calling of
6
His
21
first disciples
34. 39.
45.
An
unclean
Peter's
. .
wife's
mother healed
35
Christ's private prayers,
II
^purpose of
one
.
Christ's
.
.16
21
A leper cleansed
Privileges of Capernaum,
sick of the
.
12.
palsy healed
.26
.
13
22. 28.
12.
Calling of Levi,
souls,
Christ
the physician of
bottles
.
30 36
23
III.
1
The
.43
.
21.
Christ's
.
by His
friends
48
22
30.
35.
Warning
against divisions,
fulness of gos.
pel forgiveness,
eternal damnation
sister,
53
31
Christ's brother,
and
and mother
58
62
IV.
120.
21
25.
importwe
67
.
hear 26 30
29.
72 77
34.
3641.
Vlll
TABLE OP CONTENTS,
\.
17.
rencs
18
......
home
to his friends
.
Gada87
20.
The man
that
devil sent
21
34.
35
43.
6.
daughter raised to
TI.
Christ in His
belief
.....
own
country,
to death
107
13,
The
first
preach
29. 30 34,
14 35
by Herod
116
The
apostles' return
rest,
from preaching,
the
122
importance of
Christ's compassion
and two
46.
The multitude
fishes
47
VII.
56.
......
fed with five loaves
,
126
130
133
113,
14
The
23,
30,
The heart
140
24
144
31
37.
dumb
148
VIII.
13,
The multitude
Warning The
blind
un153 157
14
21.
slowness
160
to Tinderstand in disciples
2226.
27
man
at Bethsaida healed
33,
38,
Peter's
163
34
Necessity of self-denial,
value of the
spirit
soul,
13, 14 29.
1
Christ's transfiguration
....
healed
,
Christ
168 173
179
30 38
37.
50.
16.
A tolerant
The
self-sacrifice,
184
189
X.
12. 13
1
195
plea
Yoimg
.....
201
TABLE OF CONTENTS.
MARK.
X.
17
IX
PAGE.
27.
great possessions,
Christ's
heing rich
love to sinners,
the
peril of
207
to
28
3t.
Encouragement
sake,
sufferings
.211
35
45.
lowliChrist's
.
by
example
21-5
4652.
XI.
1
.221
226
11.
voluntary poverty
12
21.
26.
Christ's
manhood,
temple cleansed
22
Importance of
ing spirit
faith,
27
33.
unbelievers
XII.
13
1
12.
17.
246
The
tribute,
Caesar and of
God
doctrine of the re-
251
18
27.
255
28
34.
44.
The
all
scribes,
. .
35
Chi'ist in the
pocrisy,
265
XIII.
8.
271
913.
14
His
first
277
23.
to provide
.
our safety,
24
31.
281
285
32
37.
290
TABLE OF CONTENTS.
XIV.
19. 1016.
anointing
for
in the house at
Bethany
295
money,
1725.
306
disciples*
2631.
3242.
fore-knowledge of
His
weakness,
Agony in
tles
the garden,
......
by His enemies
.
312
316 321
4362.
6365. 6672.
326
331
XV.
115.
condemned before
Pilate
336
340
it
1632.
Christ
mocked and
crucified
3338.
3947.
Christ's death,
344
349
Christ's burial
XVI.
18.
to Christ,
mercy
the stone
roll-
to backsliders
353
914.
1518.
1920.
^kindness to great
The
weakness of believers commission, the terms of the Gospel, the promise labourers
apostles'
358
to faithful
362
hand of God,
2.
13
3.
On
man
.14
.18
.
4.
6. 6.
7. 8.
On On On On
On On
the " time to be silent," and quotation from Petter the " bottles " mentioned in the Gospels
.
25
.36
.
38
man
43
9.
48 67 59
63
10.
11. 12. 13.
1 4.
......
.
65 68
16.
16. 17. 18.
19.
....
.
.
.
70
74
20.
21.
On the size attained by the mustard plant . On the meaning of the parable of the mustard seed On the sea of Galilee On Satanic possession On our Lord's command to the man possessed with to " go home " when cured
.
.79
81
87
92
a devil
......
woman
.
.
95
22.
....
. .
healed of the
103
23.
24.
26.
On the expression that our Lord " could do no mighty works" 111 .116 On the disciples anointing the sick with oil .136 On modem copies of the religion of the pharisees .
.
Xll
26. 27.
On modem instances of excessive zeal for traditions On subtle evasions of the fifth commandment, and quotation
.
138
from Fetter
28.
HO
142
152
On
174 176
178
184
.
.
On On
34. 35.
36.
.187 .19]
On
the expression, " every one shall be salted with fire," &c.,
.194
197
divorce,
On On
...
.
200 205
,
.
'
.218
229
42.
Onthedifferentmeaning8ofthewords"baptism"and"baptize"
real
cursing of the
228 232
237
24
49.
60. 51.
On
God of Abraham,"
260
. .
52.
63.
On On
On On On
270
the
54.
mount of Olives
271
the temple
the misapplication of the words, " take no thought be-
272
56.
forehand," &c.
66.
280
286
XIll
PAQK.
57.
On
the expression, " sun, moon, and stars," and " this gene-
ration"
58.
290
On
.291
294
On On
On
the
one,
297
.
two, or three
61.
.306
of
"kingdom
God"
63.
311
On
from Petter
.318
.
64.
65.
66.
67.
On the " young man who fled away naked " in the garden On the expression, " warmed himself at the fire " On the darkness for three hours when our Lord was crucified On the character of Mary Magdalene before her conversion
, . .
325
327
345 359
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS
ON THE GOSPELS.
MARK
1
I.
18.
The
Jesus Christ, the Son of God 2 As it is written in the prophets, Behold, I send my messenger before thy face, which shall prepare thy way before thee. 3 The voice of one crying in the wilderness, Prepare ye the way of the Lord, make his paths straight. 4 John did baptize in the wilderness, and preach the baptism of repentance for the remission of sins. 5 And there went out unto him all the land of Judaea, and they of Jeru-
salem, and were all baptized of him in the river of Jordaii, confessing their sins. 6 And John was clothed with camel's hair, and with a girdle of a skin about his loins and he did eat locusts
;
And
worthy
water
:
to stoop down and unloose. 8 I indeed have baptized you with but he shall baptize you with the Holy Ghost.
The
some
Gospel of
St.
is
in
It tells
of our
of
Lord
His
Jesus Christ.
Of
all
by
make us
Mark's Gospel.
facts
a Gospel singularly
fuU of precious
eminently rich in
its
catalogue
of His doings.
It often contains
minute
historical details
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
Matthew,
In
short, it is
who
was
inspired to write
Let us read
it
with holy
Like all the rest of Scripture, every word Mark is " given by inspiration of God," and every
"profitable." *
verses,
word
is
Lord Jesus
The very
God."
first
sentence speaks of
Him
as "the
Son of
ours.
They were
nothing
They were a
There
is
v. 18.)
The
divinity of Christ is
Here
lies
the
He made upon
the cross.
Here
lies
sinners.
* " St. Mark has the special gift of terse hrevity, and of grapliic painting in wonderful comhination. While on ereiy occasion he compresses the discourses, works, and history into the simplest possible kernel, he on the other hand, unfolds the scenes more Not clearly than St. Matthew does, who excels in the discourses. only do single incidents become in his hands complete pictures, but even when he is very brief, he often gives, with one pencil Stier's Words stroke, something new and peculiarly his own."
of the Lord Jems.
JIARK, CHAP.
like ourselves,
for ever."
I.
3
all,
but of one
ix. 3.)
who
is
"over
God
blessed
(Rom.
when we remember
to this doctrine
that
He who
With
Our
it,
Without
it,
many.
We
who
is
wrath
Christ.
We
He
is
how
the beginning
John the
is
written in the
In the very
it
woman
we
find the
same
It
was a promise
day come.
often
renewed
to patriarchs,
and repeated
His death,
of,
life.
prophecied
He
came.
was written."
We should always read the Old Testament with a desire We study this to find something in it about Jesus Christ.
portion of the Bible with
little profit, if
we cmi
see in
it
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
prophets.
ment more
It
was
said
by
Him
whose words
place,
ike
We
went out
to
him
all
baptized of
him
in the river
The fact here recorded is one that is much overlooked. "We are apt to lose sight of him who went before the face of our Lord, and to see nothing but the Lord Himself.
We forget
And
yet
Sun.
it is
excitement
all
over Palestine.
it
from
Lord,
its
our
when He
appeared.
"He
ye were willing to
v. 35.)
little
(John
We
there
how
dependence
is
to be placed on what
called "popularity."
If ever
for a season,
John the Baptist was that man. Yet of all the crowds who came to his baptism, and heard his preaching, how
few,
it
may be
feared,
were converted
Some, we
may
But
Let us remember
this
MARK, CHAP.
1.
A great congregation
many
no doubt
is
a pleasing sight.
But
How
It
is
It is
a crowd.
John
He
exalted
Christ
after
me."
He
"He
shall baptize
by mortal man.
this day.
More important
principal
is
The
to
work
of the Gospel,
people,
save.
to set the
Lord Jesus
fulness
His
to
and
The next
work he has
of being
These
for the like
would be well
if
there were
more ministers
much we know by
Have we
peace ?
felt
practical experience
?
of the
truths
"
"V\Tiat
think
we
of Christ ?
Him
for
Is
?
our souls
^What think we
He
all
things to
Holy Ghost ?
Has
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
wrouglit any
He
work
?
in our hearts ?
Has He renewed,
us partakers of the
Has He made
"If any
his."
man have
(Rom.
Christ he
is
none of
viii. 9.)
MARK
came to pass in those days, that Jesus came from Nazareth of Galilee, and was baptized of John in
9
it
I.
920.
15
And
Jordan. 10 And straightway coming up out of the water, he saw the heavens opened, and the Spirit like a dove descending upon him 11 And there came a voice from heaven, saying, Thou art my beloved Son, in whom I am well pleased. 12 And immediately the spirit driveth him into the wilderness. 13 And he was there in the wilderness forty days, tempted of Satan; and was with the wild beasts and the angels ministered unto him. 14 Now after that John was put in prison, Jesus came into Galilee, preaching the Gospel of the kingdom of God,
;
and the kingdom of God is at hand repent ye, and believe the Gospel. 16 Now as he walked by the sea of Galilee, he saw Simon and Andrew
his brother casting a net into the sea for they were fishers. 17 And Jesus said unto them, Come ye after me, and I will make you to become fishers of men. 18 And straightway they forsook their nets, and followed him.
:
19 And when he had gone a little farther thence, he saw James the son of Zebedee, and John his brother, who also were in the ship mending their
nets.
20 And straightway he called them left their father Zebedee in the ship with the hired servants, and went after him.
and they
This passage
is
It
is
is
a striking
the peculiar
of our
Mark's Gospel.
The baptism
His
and the
calling of
first disciples,
Let us
tchich loas
We read,
art
came a
Son, in
Thou
my
beloved
whom
am
well pleased."
It
MARK, CHAP.
I.
7
love
which has
all eternity. all
things
iii.
It
new
covenant.
is
There
Christ's believing
members.
own
doings,
They
aE
their ways.
Jesus Christ.
He
sees
no spot in them.
He
ness,
They
in the Beloved,"
them.
He
is
Let us
preaching.
We read that He
came
saying,
"Eepent
ye,
God have
to the present
"Repent and
believe."
The apostle Paul told the Ephesian elders, when he left them for the last time, that the substance of his teaching among them had been "repentance towards God, and
faith towards our
Lord Jesus
Christ."
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
the best of precedents for such teaching.
He had
The
Great Head of the Church had given him a pattern. Repentance and faith were the foundation stones of Christ's
ministry.
Repentance and
human
faith
We
bom
this,
if
we
consider
the
necessities of
in sin
need to
see
repent, be converted,
bom
again, if
we would
All
of us are
all
by nature guilty
flee to
it, if
must
the hope
and believe in
we would
be saved.
AU
up
to deeper repentance.
this repentance
and
faith.
Have we
laid hold
felt
our
sins,
Have we
"We may
But we
we
die impenitent
and unbelieving.
a lively faith in a
salvation.
Redeemer
May we
never rest
In the exercise
It is only through
of
them
men have
peace at the
last.
Churchmembership and
one.
no
They only
die
in
the Lord
believe."
Let us
MARK, CHAP.
who were
that our
first called to
I.
he
Christ's disciples.
"We read
Lord
Simon and Andrew, when they a net into the sea," and James and John
called
clear
first
followers
of our
this world.
They
of Christ
hy might, nor hy power, but by my Spirit, Lord of hosts." (Zech. iv. 6.) The words of
will always be found true
:
Paul
many
might}%
"Not many wise men after not many noble are called.
world to
mighty."
(1 Cor.
i.
26, 27.)
We must beware
that there
is
of giving
way
to the
common
notion,
The Bible
contains
many
in
to
him
Gideon was thrashing wheat, when him a message from heaven. Elisha was ploughing, when Elijah called him to be prophet in his stead. The apostles were fishing, when Jesus called them to follow Him. It is disgraceful to be covetous, or
proud, or a cheat, or a gambler, or a drunkard, or a glutton,
or unclean.
But
it is
no disgrace
to
be poor.
The labourer
10
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
serves Ckrist faithfully
is
who
far
more honourable in
serves sin.
tJie
who
Let us
office to
which our
Lord
We
read that
He
said,
"Come
fishers of
men."
The meaning of this expression is clear and unmistakeable. The disciples were to become fishers for souls. They were to labour to draw men out of darkness into light, and from the power of Satan to God. They were
to strive to bring
men
We ought
instruction.
to
mark
It
is full
of
It is the oldest
name by which
New
Testament.
name
the
first
mind.
He
The
is
administrator of ordinances.
souls.
He
is to
be a "fisher" of
minister
who
this
Does the fisherman strive to catch fish aU means, and grieve if unsuccessful ?
ought
to
Does he use
The
minister
do the same.
toil
Does he
hope
?
Happy
is
that
man,
whom
the fisher's
skill,
and
diligence,
and
combined
to
Let us resolve
pray
much
for ministers.
Their
office
MARK, CHAP.
help
of
I.
11
all
many
intercessions
their
from
praying people.
own
No wonder
"Who
If
things?" (2 Cor.
let
16.)
we
it
us begin to do
MAEK
21
I.
21-34.
the unclean
spirits,
and straightway on the sabbath day he entered into the synagogue, and
taught.
him.
28 And immediately his fame spread abroad throughout all the region round about Galilee. 29 And forthwith, when they were come out of the synagogue, they entered into the house of Simon and Andrew, with James and John. 30 But Simon's wife's mother lay sick of a fever, and anon they tell
of her. 31 And he came and took her by the hand, and lifted her up and immediately the fever left her, and she ministered unto them. 32 And at even, when the sun did set, they brought unto him all that were diseased, and them that were possessed with devils. 33 And all the city was gathered together at the door. 34 And he healed many that were sick of divers diseases, and cast out many devils; and suffered not the devils to speak, because they knew
;
22 And they were astonished at his doctrine for he taught them as one that had authority, and not as the
:
Scribes.
23 And there was in their synagogue a man with an unclean spirit and he cried out, 24 Saving, Let tis alone what have we to do with thee, thou Jesus of Nazareth ? art thou come to destroy I know thee who thou art, the us Holy One of God. 25 And Jesus rebuked him, saying, Hold thy peace, and come out of him. 26 And when the unclean spirit had torn him, and cried with a loud voice, he came out of him. 27 And they were all amazed, in;
.^
him
somuch that they questioned among themselves, saying, What thing is what new doctrine is this ? for this with authority eommandeth he even
.''
him.
These
list
They
us
how
our Lord
wife's
mother of a
fever.
Twice
we
knew our
12
Lord.
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
In one place
it
knew Him." Ii^ know thee who thou art, They knew Christ, when Scribes
says,
" they
Him.
And
salvation
The mere
and doctrines of
Christi-
Such
all
belief is
no better
devils.
They They
cast
believe
and know
will one
the Christ.
believe that
He
to
them down
endless
It
is
these
faith
points
even
less
than the
Such doubts
self-willed
as these find
no
infidelity
19.)
know
is
Him.
He
the Son of
God and
world,
Him
with
purpose of heart.
Him
application to
Him
for
mercy and
nouns."
It
is
It
is
is
a Saviour."
He
is
my
Saviour and
my
MARK, CHAP.
Lord."
I.
IS
The
first.
The
true Christian
We learn,
follow
He
ought to
the
mother.
example of the friends of Simon's wife's We read that when she " lay sick of a fever,"
no remedy
There
is
like this.
Means
are to be used
diligently,
when property
friends
is to
The help
of
be sought. But
cry to the
be done,
is to
None
com-
can relieve us so
passionate,
efi'ectually as
He
can.
None
so
and
so willing to relieve.
When
;
Jacob was
God
first-r-
When
Hezekiah was in
trouble,
Lord
(2
" I bespech
xix.
he
first
Kings
19.)
When
is
Lazarus feU
" Lord,"
(John
xi.
immediately to Jesus
whom
thou lovest
sick."
Now
let
us do likewise.
"Cast thy
" Cast-
faith.
If thou do, it
:
wonld it would save the devils for they have their literal knowledge and general helief of the word. Dost thou think it enough to know and believe that Christ lived and died for sinners^ The devil and his angels know and believe as much. Labour then to outstrip them, and to get a better faith
for if it
than
is
in them."
Fetter on
Mark.
1661.
14
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
with, thanksgiving, let
and supplication
your requests be
;
made known
Phil. iv. 6.)
to
God."
(Psa. Iv.
22
1 Pet. v. 7
this rule,
but practise
it too.
We
live in
The days
tear,
of
darkness in a man's
are
many.
It needs
no prophet's
we
many a
die.
and
many
a heart-wrench, before
we
Let us be
armed with a
come. Let us
know what to
do,
when
sickness, or bereave-
ment, or
cross, or loss, or
house at Capernaum.
We
heals.
whai a
complete
the
He
this
He
woman by
lifts
her."
But
was not
once
all.
At
That
we
are told
it,
was
entirely
removed.
in
The fevered woman was not only made weU a moment, but in the same moment made strong and
able to work.*
* Let us not fail to observe here, that Peter, one of our Lord's principal apostles had a wife. Yet he was called to be a disciple, and afterwards chosen to be an apostle. More than this, we find St. Paul speaking of him as a married man, in his Epistle to the Corinthians, many years after this. (1 Cor. ix. 5.) How tliis fact can be reconciled with the compulsory celibacy of the clergy, which the Church of Rome enforces and requires, it is for the friends and advocates of the Roman Catholic Church to explain. To a plain reader, it seems a plain proof that it is not
MARK, CHAP.
I.
15
We
may
emblem
of Christ's
To
gives
as
many
to
as receive
He
power
He
in
cleanses
them by His
Spirit,
Those
whom He
sanctifies.
When He
new
heart.
bestows an absolution.
He also He also
bestows a
When He
The
spirit,
He also
Him
merely
cured,
and then
left to itself.
new
and enabled
so to live as to
please God.
There
is
all
who
feel
this state of
mind.
They
fear that if
cross,
they
by and bye
fall
away.
They
Let them
for-
know
raised
that Jesus
sakes those
who
Once
and
washed
ing to
to
*'
minister-
Him "
They
shall
have power
flesh,
and
resist
wrong
for ministers to be men. And when we add to this striking fact, that St. Paul, when writing to Timothy, says, that " a bishop should be the husband of one wife," (1 Tim. iii. 2,) it is clear that the whole Romish doctrine of clerical celibacy is utterly opposed to holy Scripture.
mamed
16
the devil.
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
Only
let
them
begin,
and they
shall go on.
work.
The
to serve Christ.
There
Christ,
is
all
who
down by
a sense of their
case.
own
are
infirmity.
They
They sometimes
all,
but be cast
Their
away in the
they
wilderness.
The
difficulties
in the
now fear shall vanish out of their path. The Hon way which they now dread, shall prove to be
The same
gracious
chained.
hand which
first
touched
to
and
the
His
sheep.
whom He
loves
and pardons.
He
loves
unto the end. Though sometimes cast down, they shall never be cast away. The healed soul shall always go on
MARK
35 And in the morning, rising up a great while before day, he went out and departed into a solitary place, and there prayed. 36 And Simon and they that were with him followed after him. 37 And when they had found him, they said unto him, All men seek for
I.
3539.
thee.
38 And he said unto them, Let us go into the next towns, that I may preach there also for therefore came
:
I forth.
39 And he preached in their synagogues throughout all Galilee, and cast out devils.
Every
which
from His
lips,
ought
be deeply interesting
MARK, CHAP.
to a true Christian.
I.
17
and a sajdng in the
close atten-
We
see a fact
passage
tion.
we have
see, for
just read,
which deserve
We
We
He
went
out,
solitary place,
and there
prayed."
We
we
When He
told,
was baptized,
iii.
He was
"praying."
(Luke
21.)
When
29.)
that "as
He
ix.
Before
He
we
are told
that "
"vi.
12.)
fain
He continued all night in prayer to God." (Luke When all men spoke well of Him, and would have made Him a King, we are told that " He went
mountain apart
to pray."
up
into a
(Mark
xiv. 23.)
When
He
said,
In
faint.
Sinless
as
He
was.
He
set us
Him
means
as a
man.
His very
exercise
was a
perfection kept
up through the
of prayer.
We
ought to see in
all this
the
immense importance
"holy, harmless,
of private devotion.
undefiled,
If
He who was
thus
prayed
continually,
are compassed
with infirmity
If
He found it needful to
G
offer
up suppU-
18
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
and tears, how mucli more many things offend daily ? What shall we say to those who never pray at all, in the face of such a passage as this ? There are many such, many it may be feared, in the list of baptized people, who rise up in the morning without prayer, and without prayer lie down at night, many who never speak one
cations with strong crying
is it
needful
for us,
who
in
word
say
to
God.
Ar-"
they Christians
It
is
impossible to
so.
less servants.
man
call
upon God.
To be
prayerless
be
Christless,
What
little
shall
we
say to those
who
We are obHged
little
of the
mind
little.
of Christ.
Asking
little,
little,
Seeking
little.
they possess
It
grace,
Here
is
Here
is
it
does begin.
man
backslides from
* " Ministers must pray much, if they would be Buceessful. The Yea, our Lord apostles spent their time this way. (Acts vi. 3.) Jesus preached all day, and continued all night alone in prayer to God. Ministers should be much in prayer. Tliey use to reckon how many hours they spend in reading and study. It were far better both for ourselves and the Church of God, if more time was spent in prayer. Luther's spending three hours daily in secret prayer, and Bradford's studying on his knees, and other instances of men in our time, are talked of rather than imitated." I'raiU. 1696.
MARK, CHAP.
God.
T.
19'
Like Him,
let
us
and pray."
We see,
saying of our
Lord
as to the purpose
for which
Se
came
We
find
Him
may
for there-
came I
forth."
The meaning of these words is plain and unmistakeable. Our Lord declares that He came on earth to be a preacher and a teacher. He came to fulfil the prophetical office,
to be the " prophet greater
which
He
had from
all eternity
an evangelist.
show
to
man the
and
way
his
One
principal part of
work on
earth,
was
to
them that
sat in darkness,
and pardon
to
the chief
He
says, "
came I
forth."
We
office
infinite
honour the
It
is
of the preacher.
an
He
Aaron.
He
might have
But He chose
died as a
when He
our
sins.
His
daily,
was
to preach.
" Therefore,"
He
20
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
and
tell
Let us
proper place
it
let
By
was
it
first
By
By
By preaching,
inquirers
By
preaching, Christianity
world.
^There are
at those
and mock
many now who sneer at missionaries, who go out into the high-ways of
air.
But
doing.
and
cast
The Xing
and Lord of
lords
Sometimes we see
side,
on the mountain
But the
great
work
He
"came I
forth."
The
that
we
listen to
we hear may not be highly gifted. The sermons may be weak and poor. But after all,
MARK,
preacliing
is
CHL^P.
I.
21
saving souls.
The
Gospel
is
God was
not
ashamed
has
said,
to employ.
This
is
the
MARK.
40 And there came a leper to him, beseeching him, and kneeling down to him, and saj-ing unto him, If thou wilt, thou canst make me clean. 41 And Jesus, moved with compassion, put forth his hand, and touched him, and saith unto him, I noil ; be
I.
4045.
44
See thou
say nothing to any man but go thy way, shew thyself to the Priest, and offer for thy cleansing those things which Moses commanded, for a testi-
and began
to
thou clean. 42 And as soon as he had spoken, immediately the leprosy departed from him, and he was cleansed. 43 And he straitly charged him, and
forthwith sent him away
publish it much, and to blaze abroad the matter, insomuch that Jesus could no more openly enter into the city, but was without in desert places and they came to him from every quarter.
:
We
Jesus Christ
healed a leper.
Of aU our Lord's
miracles of healing
none were prohably more marvellous than those performed on leprous people.
Two
cases only
have been
fully
Of
one.
to realize, in the first place, the dreadful
Let us try
Leprosy
a complaint of which
we know
is
little
it is
or
far
In Bible lands
more common.
It
is
It
is
a disease which
utterly incurable.
no mere skin
affection, as
It
is
22
and
tbat,
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
to rot
by
inclies.
Let
us remember beside
tbis,
ordinances of religion.
separate bouse.
He was
all this,
obliged to dwell in a
or minister to
him.
Let us remember
To use the words of Aaron, when he interceded Miriam, he was " as one dead, of whom the flesh is
xii.
12.)
leprosy
is
among
ourselves ?
is
That
disease
is
the
Like leprosy,
a deep-seated disease,
Like leprosy,
unfit for the
it
com-
for
the
glory
of heaven.
and
is
down
to the second
it is
death.
disease
And
worst of
all,
far worse
than leprosy,
Do we know
these things ?
Have we discovered our own sinfulness, guilt, and corruption ? Happy indeed is that person who has been really
taught to feel that he
there
is is a " miserable sinner," and that " no health in him " Blessed indeed is he who
!
is
To know our
MARK, CHAP.
a cure.
It
is
I.
23
many
souls that
Let us
from these
verses,
the icondrous
We
and almighty power of tlie Lord Jesus Christ. are told that the unhappy leper came to our Lord,
be thou clean."
At
and he
was healed.
healthy man.
It
is
Who
rose
alive, his
The evening
fit
full of
like life
whom we
have
almighty.
It
is
impossible.
is
No
it.
so deep-seated but
is
He
able to cure
No
plague of soul
it.
so virulent
can heal
so long as
he
The worst
of spiritual lepers
may
yet be cleansed.
No
24
they were
all
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
cured
;
Jesus
yet
The
chief of sinners
may
Men
they are too bad to be saved, but because they will not
come
there
to Christ that
He may
save them.
Let us
is
a time
as a time to speak.
This
is
a "truth which
find our
is
taught us in a remarkable
charging this
way.
tell
We
Lord
strictly
man
to
"We
man
this injimction,
in the warmth of his zeal disobepng and publishing and " blazing abroad " his
And we
There
ever
is
a lesson in
all
this of
difficult it
may
be to use
it rightly.
clear that
there are
for
times
us work
Him
quietly
attention
by a noisy
zeal.
There
is
"not
rightits
Everything
is
beautiful in
occasions be
patience, than in
is
any
We
holy to
By
forgetfulness
The
a delicate and
difficult
one, without
MARK, CHAP.
I.
25
more
than to confess
bridle so
Him
before men,
much
is
as the spur.
all
But
;
undeniable
the time
that there
a time for
things
and
to
know
enemy
Let us
mind.
all
know
Let us be bold
afraid to " speak
let
and not be
of
Him
let
But
us never for-
and
us beware of doing
harm by an
Hi-directed zeal.
* It would not be wise for a speaker at an English public meeting to proclaim the- names of the families in Italy where the Bible is read, and to point out the streets and houses where these families resided. Such a speaker might be well-meaning, and full of zeal.
might really desire to gloi-ify Christ, and pubUsh the triumplis of His gi-ace. But he would be guilty of a sad indiscretion, and show great ignorance of the very lesson which the verses before us contain. The words of an old commentator on this subject deserve notice:
" In that our Saviour forbids this leper to publish this mii-acle at this unseasonable time, we learn that all truths are not fit to be professed or uttered at all times. Though we must never deny any tnith, being demanded of it, or lawfully enjoined to profess it,
yet there be used.
is
He
is
sometimes
to
(Eccles.
7.)
When the case stands are we to conceal the truth ? 1. that the uttering of it may bring hurt to the truth itself, as here, the publishing of this miracle was like to stop Christ's ministry. 2. When we are in the company of such persons as are more likely to cavil and scoff at the truth, than to make any good use of it. 3. When we are in the company of malicious enemiea of the truth." 1661. (Matt. vii. 6.) Fetter on Mark.
so,
When
26
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
MARK
1 And again he entered into Capernaum after some days; and it was
II.
112.
noised that he was in the house. 2 And straightway many were gathered together, insomuch that there was no room to receive them, no, not 80 much as about the door: and he preached the word unto them. 3 And they come unto him, bringing one sick of the palsy, which was
who can forgive sins but God only ? 8 And immediately when Jesus perceived in his spirit that they so reasoned within themselves, he said unto them. Why reason ye these things in your hearts ? 9 "Whether is it easier to say to the sick of the palsy. Thy sins be forgiven
blasphemies.'
thee
;
or to say. Arise,
and take up
borne of four. 4 And when they could not come nigh unto him for the press, they uncovered the roof where he was and when they had broken it up, they let down the bed wherein the sick of the palsy lay. 5 "When Jesus saw their faith, he said unto the sick of the palsy, Son, thy sins be forgiven thee. 6 But there were certain of the Scribes sitting there, and reasoning
:
thy bed, and walk } 10 But that ye may know that the Son of man hath power on earth to
forgive sins, (he saith to the sick of the palsy,) 11 I say unto thee. Arise, and take up thy bed, and go thy way into thine house.
12 And immediately he arose, took up the bed, and went forth before them all; insomuch that they were
all
at
Caperuaum.
Once more we
find
Him
We see,
This
is
strikingly illustrated
by the
history of
Capernaum.
so
No
have enjoyed
where
It
much
as
earthly ministry,
did this
city.
It
He
dwelt, after
He
left
Nazareth.
worked,
But
They crowded
till
there
was
They
MARK, CHAP.
were
astonislied.
II.
27
with wonder at His
converted.
They were
filled
mighty works.
They
they
Sun
of Righteous-
and yet
And
He
down
to hell
for if the
mighty works,
in
in thee,
Sodom,
you. That
shall be
more
dom
23, 24.)
It is good for us
aU
all
to
mark
pernaum.
We are
needs
nothing but the powerful preaching of the Gospel to convert people's souls,
and that
if
the Gospel
believe.
is
only brought
forget the
mmt
We
We
faultless preaching,
and saw
it
confirmed
by the most
in
trespasses
and
sins.
is
We
the savour of
some,
fire
is
the
which
wax
will also
harden the
clay.
Nothing, in
the
world.
highly favoured as
28
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
their steps.
We ought often
"From
hardness of heart,
Good Lord, deliver us." "We see, in the second place, from these verses, how great a blessing affliction may prove to a man's soul. "We are told that one sick of the palsy was brought to
our Lord, at Capernaum, in order to be healed. Helpless
his
and
let
down
where
At once
The great Physician of soul and body saw him, and gave him speedy relief. He restored him to health and strength. He granted him the far
was
gained. greater blessing of forgiveness of sins.
In short the
body and
man
morning weak,
soul, re-
down both
rejoicing.
in
own house
Who
man
Without
it
he might
Without
it,
and
forgiven thee."
That palsy
it
was indeed a
blessing.
Who
was the
beginning of eternal
life to
his soul ?
How many
They have
Sicknesses
MARK, CHAP.
to
II.
29'
the world,
shown them
that I
their
own
them
to pray.
Thousands can
good
for
me
was
afflicted,
We may
is
Every
sickness
is
and sorrow
meant
to call us nearer
Him.
may
each
affliction is
appointed to convey.
that speaketh."
we " refuse
"We
not
Him
see, in
possessed hy our
Lord
Jesus Christ.
with a meaning.
He said these words He knew the hearts of the Scribes by whom He was suiTounded. He intended to shew them that He laid claim to be the true High Priest, and to have
Son, thy sins be forgiven thee." the power of absolving sinners, though at present the
But
that
He had
the
power
" thy
He
sins
told
them
expressly.
He
says, "
The Son of
Li saying
be forgiven thee,"
He had
to
forgive
sins
This
angel
do but God.
No
in heaven, no
man upon
earth,
no church in council,
him
30'
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
They may
They may
whose
sins
God
their
is
willing to forgive.
absolve
by
This
which
He
Let MS think
that Jesus
is
moment how
great a blessing
it is,
we know
where
a
to
go for absolution
sacrifice
mands an atonement
makes
it
many
sins.
God's holiness
Priest
absolutely needful.
Without an atoning
Jesus Christ
is
the very
we
let
and pardon,
And now
known
applied to
High
Priest ?
we
are
Him ? Have we sought absolution ? If not, yet in our sins. May we never rest till the Spirit
we have
sat at the feet of
Jesus and heard his voice, saying, " Son, thy sins be forgiven thee."
MARK
13
II.
1322.
:
And he went
;
sea side
ed unto him, and he taught them. 14 And as he passed by, he saw Levi the son of Alphseus sitting at the receipt of custom, and said unto him, Follow me. And he arose and followed
him.
15 And it came to pass, that, as Jesus sat at meat in his house, many Publicansand sinners sat also together
i |
<
with Jesus and his disciples for there were many, and they followed him. 16 And when the Scribes and Pharisees saw him eat with Publicans and sinners, they said unto his disciples. How is it that he eateth and drinketh with Publicans and sinners ? 17 When Jesus heard it, he saith unto them, They that are whole have no need of the physician, but they that are sick I came not to call the
:
MARK, CHAP.
righteous, but sinners to repentance. 18 And the disciples of John and and of the Pharisees used to fast
:
II.
31
shall they fast
they come and say unto him, Why do the disciples of John and of the Pharisees fast, but thy disciples fast not ? 19 And Jesus said unto them. Can the children of the bridechamber fast, while the bridegroom is with them ? as long as they have the bridegroom with them, thev cannot fast. 20 But the days will come, when the bridegroom shall be taken away
in those days. 21 No man also seweth a piece of new cloth on an old garment else the new piece that filled it up taketh awar from the old, and the rent is made worse. 22 And no man putteth new wine into old bottles else the new wine doth burst the bottles, and the wine is spilled, and the bottles will be marred but new wine must be put into
:
:
new
bottles.
The
first
person "who
is
is
passage,
who
is
called
Matthew
this.
in the It
is
no
less
history
now
from
power of Christ
to call
We
and make them His disciples. read that he said to Levi, when " sitting at the
Follow me."
receipt of custom,
And
at once "
he arose
From
a pubHcan he became an
first
book in that
New
Tes-
tament, which
now known
all
This
call
is
Without a
divine
We are all
we
so sunk in sin,
and
wedded
God and seek salvation, unless He first called us by His grace. God must speak to our hearts by His Spirit, before we shall ever speak to Him. Those who are sons
of God, says the 17th Article, are " called according to
is
committed
When
32
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
acts as a Sovereign
;
He He
but
He
acts
with
infinite
mercy.
often
chooses
those
unlikely to
do His
will,
and
His kingdom.
He
draws them
to
As
hardest heart.
operation."
mighty in
it,
to despair entirely of
when we read this passage of Scripture. He who called still works. The age of miracles is money The love of is a powerful principle, past. not yet
Levi, stiU lives and
but the
call of Christ is
more powerful.
this world's
good things.
The
may
yet reach
We
may
arise,
and take up
and pray
for others.
Who
can
No
one
is
too
bad
Let us pray
for
all.
We
The
that of a
fault
Physician.
with
Him
for
But
it.
He
MARK, CHAP. n.
33
some
king,
did not
come
suppose, to be nothing
Had
and
this
been
all
the
aU
man
A teacher and an
like
fallen sinners like
rules.
example might be
an unfallen being
Adam
But
ourselves
want healing
first,
before
we can value
He knew
all sick
the necessities of
human
nature.
He saw
us
sin,
and djing
He
pitied us,
relief.
to bring divine
He came
No
to give health
and cure
It
is
His
life
For imfailing
skill,
for
unwearied tenderness,
There is none like Him. But what do we know ourselves of this special office Have we ever felt our spiritual sickness and of Christ ?
cian of souls stands alone.
appHed
sight of
religion,
to
Him
for relief ?
We
feel
sick-
To be
sensible
own
transgressions, is
the
first
symptom
of spiritual health.
Happy
indeed are
34
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
!
they who have found out their soul's disease know that Christ is the yery Physician they
let
Let them
require,
and
them apply
to
Him
witnout delay.
in
which essentially
sees,
differ.
" No man,"
He
tells
the Phari-
new
"
No man
These words,
"
Why
?
do the
John
fast,
"
Our
among His
able.
disciples
His
little flock
was
as yet
young in
grace,
and
weak
in faith, knowledge,
softly,
and experience.
They must
Fasting,
be led on
Him who
the
friend,
who
lived in
But fasting was not equally suitable to the disciples of Him, who was the Bridegroom Himself, brought glad
tidings to sinners,
and came
men.
In
His
disciples at present,
would
be putting
"new wine
It
would be
The
principle laid
down
in these
little
parables
is
one
of great importance.
MARK, CHAP.
and admits of a wide
evils that
II.
85
Forgetfnlness of
it
application.
harm
in the Church.
to
The
on the old garment, and put the new wine into old
bottles,
How
concile
was
it
is
recorded
to re-
Men
Judaism with
Christianity,
and
to circumcise as
well as baptize.
They endeavoured
to
to place it side
by
with the Gospel of Christ. In fact they would fain have put the " new wine into old bottles.'* And in
side
How
apostles
was
it vnth.
were dead
history.
of
Church
Some
make
to the
acceptable
by mingling
to
with
it
Platonic
Some laboured
recommend
In
heathen by bor-
rowing forms, processions, and vestments from the temples of heathen gods.
short,
new
They
patch on the
old garment."
And
so
doing they
evil.
enormous
for the
How is
sent day ?
it
with
many
around us and
see.
have
the
name
of the ungodly,
sin,
to
and
to enjoy the
"new
36
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
They
will
be done.
It
is
"
Ye
cannot serve
man can serve two masters." God and mammon." Let us place side
concluding words of our
" No
by
Lord
bottles."
in this passage, *
"New
MARK
23
n. 2328.
And
it
came
to pass, that
he
went through the com fields on the sabbath day and Ms disciples began, as they went, to pluck the ears of com.
;
How he went into the house of in the days of Abiathar the High Priest, and did eat the shewbread, which is not lawful to eat but for the
26
God
24 And the Pharisees said unto him, Behold, why do they on the sabbath day that which is not lawful ? 25 And he said unto them, Have ve never read what David did, when he had need, and was an hungered, he, and they that were with him }
and gave also to them which were with him ? 27 And he said unto them, The sabbath was made for man, and not
Priests,
man
for the sabbath 28 Therefore the Son of Lord also of the sabbath.
:
man
is
These
Lord Jesus
through the
We
At
once
we hear
them
to our Lord,
ofience.
as if they
* It must always be remembered tbat the " bottle " here spoken of was not a bottle of glass or of earthenware, but of leather. Unless this is kept in view, the parable is unintelligible to an similar remark applies to David's words, " I English mind. am become like a bottle in the smoke." (Psal. cxix. 83.)
MARK, CHAP.
II.
^
desire to understand
""WTiy do they on the sabbath day that which is not lawful ? " They received an answer full of deep wisdom,
which
all
who
attached to
trifles
religion.
The
formalists, if
to
there ever
They seem
outward
and
to these
by
traditions of their
Their godliness
was made up
and
of washings,
and
fastings,
and
peculiarities
and
faith,
The Pharisees would probably have found no fault, if the disciples had been guilty of some offence against the moral law. They would have winked at covetousness,
or perjury, or extortions, or excess, because they were
sins to
inclined.
But no man-made
way
lest
we
fall into
the error of
walk in
their steps.
doctrines.
They make
to the
saints' days,
and turning
and bowing
at the
name
of Jesus,
faith, or separation
from the
go
world.
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
Against this
spirit let
man's soul
is
in a
bad
state,
when he
begins to regard
man-made
portance,
rites
and
It
is
exalts
of the
is
Gospel.
There
mischief within.
uneasy conscience.
Protestantism to
direction.
tians,
The first steps of apostasy from Romanism have often been in this
years.
No wonder that St. Paul said to the Gala"Ye observe days, and months, and times, and I am afraid of you, lest I have bestowed on you
iv.
10, 11.)
"We
see,
value of a knowledge of
Holy
Scripture.
Our Lord
by
He
an hungred."
when " he had need and was " Have ye never read what David did ? "
that the writer of the book of
after
man
bad example.
(1
Kings xv.
He had
hunger, and eaten " the shewbread, which is not lawful He had thus shown that to eat but for the priests.* "
* There is some difficulty in this passage in the mention of Abiathar as " the High Priest." In the book of Samuel it appears
MARK, CHAP.
II.
39
To
this Scripture
His adversaries.
that Abimelech was the High Priest, when the cu-curastance here referred to took place. (1 Sam. xxi. 6.) Tlie explanations of this difficulty are various. They are as
follows.
1. Beza says that both Abiathar and Abimelech had each two names, and that Abiathar was frequently called Abimelech, and Abimelech Abiathar. (See in proof of this, 2 Sam. viii. 17: 1
Chron.
2.
viii. 16,
and xxiv.
3.)
Lightfoot would translate the words, " in the days of Abiathar, the son of the High Priest," and says he is named rather than his father because he brought the Ephod to David, and by him inquiry was made by Urim and Thummim. He also says, that the Jews by " Abiathar" understood the Urim and Thummim, and to say that the thing was done " under Abiathar" would show that it was done by divine direction.
3. Whitby thinks that by " the High Priest" here, we are not to understand him who was strictly so called, but only one who was an eminent man of the order. He quotes as examples, Matt. ii. 4 xxvi. 3 xxvii. 62 John xi. 47 Mark xiv. 10, 43.
: : :
that both Abimelech and Abiathar officiated as High Priests at the same time. That there was nothing altogether unusual in there being two Chief Priests at once, is shown by 1 Sam. viii. 17, where two names are given as " the Priests."
4.
5. Some think that there has been a mistake made in transcribing the original words of St. Mark in this place, and some words have been inserted, or wrongly written. Beza's manuscript omits tlje words translated, " in the time of Abiathar the High Priest," altogether. The St. Gall manuscript and the Gothic version have the word "Priest" simply, and not "High Priest." The Persian version has "Abimelech" instead of "Abiathar." However, it is only fair to say that the evidence of the great majority of manuscripts and versions is in favour of the text as it stands.
Some think
Some
more
probable than others. But any one of them is far more reasonable and deserving of belief than to suppose, as some have asserted, that St. Mark made a blunder! Such a theory destroys the whole principle of the inspiration of Scripture. Transcribers of the Bible
have possibly made occasional mistakes. The original writers were inspired in the writing of every word, and therefore could not err.
40
it.
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
The sword
resist.
of the Spirit
could not
They were
silenced,
shame.
Now
faith,
be a pattern
and
practice,
Our grand reason for our should always be, " Thus it is written
saith
in
the Bible."
"What
the
Scripture?"
We
God on
our side
We
give
matters of dispute.
We
We shall
we can
In a world
if
we must
we
serve Christ,
silences
its contents.
coming
To use
familiar
is
we must be
with
it,
and have
it
There
no
It does not
studied,
come
to
man by
intuition.
left
always
find
We
Sabbath ought
to
be decided.
MARK, CHAP.
Lord,
bath."
II.
41
for the
"was made
is
for
Sab-
There
They
Let us
St.
Mark.
what they
contain.
for
God made it for Adam in Paradise, and renewed it to Israel on Mount Sinai. It was made for all mankind, not for the Jew only, but for the whole family of Adam. It was made
man."
for
It
was
for the
good of
his soul.
was given
to
him
as a
boon and a
and not as
a burden.
But "man was not made for the Sabbath." The observance of the day of God was never meant to be so
enforced as to be an injury to his health, or to interfere
harm
his
fellow-creatures.
There
is
nothing in
all
this
to
fourth
commandment.
observance should
be enforced.
He
but
He
says
42
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
There
is little
danger of the
strictly in
its
There
is
more danger of
in all
entirely.
among us
intimately bound
up
in
the
maintenance of a holy
Sabbath.*
* The concluding words of the passage now expounded are remarkable. "The Son of man is Lord also of the Sabbath." They have received some rather strange interpretations, which it may be well to notice,
Chrysostom, Grotius, Calovius, and others, think that the 1. " son of man " in this place means " any man," any one naturally born of the family of Adam, and not Christ Himself. To say nothing of the objections that might be brought against the doctrines involved in such a sense, it is an unanswerable objection that the expression " son of man" is never used in this way in the New Testament. Whitby says that it occurs eighty-eight times, and always applies to Christ.
Others say that our Lord's meaning is, to assert His own 2. right to dispense with the observance of the fourtb commandment. This however seems a very unsatisfactory interpretation. Our Lord declares plainly in one place, that He came " not to destroy the law but to fulfil." He challenges the Jews in another place to convict Him of any breach of the law: "which of you convinceth me His enemies, when they brought Him at last before of sin?" Caiaphas, did not charge Him with breaking the fourth command-
ment.
No
true
occasion, either
doubt they would have done so, had by His teaching or practice.
He
given them
meaning appears to be, that our Lord claims the right with all the traditional rules, and man-made laws about the Sabbath, with which the Pharisees had overloaded the day of As Son of man, who came not to destroy but to save. He rest. asserts His power to set free the blessed Sabbath from the false and superstitious notions with which the Kabbins had clogged and poisoned it, and to restore it to its proper meaning and use. He declares that the Sabbath is His day, His by creation and institution, since He first gave it in Paradise and at Sinai, and proclaims His determination to defend and purify His day from
The
to dispense
MARK, CHAP.
II.
43
MARK
1
III.
112.
:
entered again into the synagogue and there was a man there which had a withered hand. 2 And they watched him, whether he would heal him on the sabbath day that they might accuse him. 3 And he saith unto the man which had the withered hand, Stand forth. 4 And he saith unto them, Is it lawful to do good on the sabbath days, or to do evil } to save life or to kill But they held their peace. 5 And when he had looked round about on them with anger, being grieved for the hardness of their hearts, he saith unto the man. Stretch forth thine hand. And he stretched it out: and his hand was restored whole as the other. 6 And the Pharisees went forth, and straightway took counsel with the Herodians against him, how they might destroy him.
;
.-"
And he
7 But Jesus withdrew himself with his disciples to the sea and a great multitude from Galilee followed him, and from Judaea,
8 And from Jerusalem, and from Idumaja, and from beyond Jordan ; and they about Tyre and Sidon, a great multitude, when they had heard what great things he did, came unto him. 9 And he spake to his disciples, that a small ship should wait on him because of the multitude, lest they should throng him. 10 For he had healed many insomuch that they pressed upon him for to touch him, as many as had plagues. 11 And unclean spirits, when they saw him, fell down before him, and cried, saying, Thou art the Son of God. 12 And he straitly charged them that they should not make him known.
;
These
hand."
verses
miracle.
He heals
man
doing good,
doing
and
"
always
day of
it
to give it to
His
disciples as a
in our Lord's words. One is His Lord of the Sabbath day " could be no less " than God Himself. It is like the expression, In this place is one (Matt. xii. 6.) The other is His intengi'eater than the temple." tion of altering the day of rest from th*^ seventh day of the week
tilings
Two
are implied
own
divinity.
The
first. At the time that He spoke, neither of these things doubtless were apparent to the Jews, and probably not to His disciples. After His ascension they " would remember his words."
to the
passage in Mayer's Commentaiy is worth reading " It is certain that Christ being a perfect pattern of doctrine in all things, did not transgi-ess, or maintain any transgi-ession against any law of God. "Wherefore it is to be held that all His speech here tendeth to nothing else but to convince the Pharisees of blindness and ignorance, touching the right keeping of the Sabbath according to the commandment, it being never required to rest so strictly as they thought." Mayer's Commentary. 1631.
.
44
of friends,
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
sucli
was the
daily
earthly ministry.
And He
"
left
us an example that
ii.
we
(1
Peter
21.)
Blessed
feebly,
who
strive,
however
Master
verses,
His
enemies.
We read that
"they
the
He
would heal
him on
What
ness of
a melancholy proof
nature
!
we have here
of the wicked-
human
when
It
men were
pre-
things,
(Prov. v. 14.)
to fare better
than
ill-
master.
They
always watched by an
Their conduct
is
scanned
They
are
marked men.
it.
They can
their con-
Their dress,
employment of time,
life,
remarked.
if at
an
error, the
ungodly
rejoice.
It
good
for
aU Christians
go,
to
keep
minds.
Wherever we
and whatever we
do, let us
MARK, CHAP. U.
46
we are "watclied." The exercise a holy jealousy over all make us thought should our conduct, that we may do nothing to cause the enemy It should make us diligent to avoid even to blaspheme. of evil." Above all, it should make us "appearance the
remember
that, like our Master,
pubHc demeanour.
Himself, knows
pray much, to be kept in our tempers, tongues, and daily That Saviour who was " watched "
how
to sjnnpathize
Lord
lays
He
teaches that
it is
This principle
He
Him, whether
it
to
good or
to save
or to kill ?
do "
"Was
it
him
alone ?
to plot murder,
moment
against
life
Him-
Was He
to
on the
Sabbath?
kill?
that before such a question as " our Lord's enemies held their peace."
It
is
No wonder
work on
the Sunday.
such as ministering
scruple.
The
holiness with
ment
invests the
Sabbath Day,
46
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
care that
tlie
down
own
The permission
"do
worldly
festivities,
travelling, journeying,
and sensual
gratification. It
to license the
Sunday
to none,
and do certain
harm
to
many.
day's rest.
They rob many a servant of his seventh They turn the Sunday of thousands into a
Let us beware of perverting our Lord's
day of hard
toil.
words from their proper meaning. Let us remember what kind of " doing good " on the Sabbath His blessed
example
there
is
sanctioned.
Let us ask
ourselves
whether
to appeal to our
Lord's example.
He
for
and excursions,
He
gives no liberty at
all.
Sis
heart.
very remarkable,
is
and demands
special attention.
It
meant
to
MARK, CHAP.
sin only excepted.
II.
47
belong to
Whatever
sinless feelings
of,
and knew
by experience.
" rejoiced," that
We read that He
He
we
He
It
is
which
and not
sinful.
an
indignation which
is justifiable,
may
St.
be properly manifested.
to teach
"The
Ephes.
iv. 26.)
is full
Yet
ficulty.
it
of dif-
Of all
there
is
feeling of anger.
less
under
evil.
control.
There
to
to so
much
and
The length
which
ill-temper, irritability,
all
must know.
at
The
and Barnabas
till
he
to every
The awful
words are
plainly taught in
And
yet here
we
see that
an anger which
is
lawful.
Let us leave
this subject
we may
all
the
matter of anger.
We
may
no
human
feeling
48
as this.
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
A
man
sinless
is
wrath
is
The
wrath of
In every
and sorrow
for those
who
cause
it,
even as
it
was
may
be sure
of,
And
we
^it
is
be angry and
sin.*
MAEK
tain,
in. 1321.
Bartholomew, and Matthew, and Thomas, and James the son of Alphaeus, and Thaddseus, and Simon the
Canaanite, 19 And Judas Iscariot, which also betrayed him and they went into an house. 20 And the multitude cometh together again, so that they could not
:
13 And he goeth up into a mounand calleth unto him whom he would and they came unto him. 14 And he ordained twelve, that they should be with him, and that he might send them forth to preach, 15 And to have power to heal sicknesses, and to cast out devils 16 And Simon he sumamed Peter 17 And James the son of Zebedee, and John the brother of James and he sumamed them Boanerges, which is, The sons of thunder 18 And Andrew, and Philip, and
:
so
tV,
21
for
The beginning of this passage describes the appointment of the twelve apostles. It is an event in our Lord's
earthly ministry, which should always be read with deep
interest.
What
men
The names
of a
few Jewish
all
known and
loved by millions
over the
* In connection with this suhject, Bishop Butler's Sermon on Resentment deserves perusal. He says at the conclusion of it " That passion, from whence men take occasion to run into the dreadful sins of malice and revenge, even that passion, as implanted in our nature by God, is not only innocent but a generous movement It is in itself, and in its original, no more than indignsr of mind. that which is the only defortion against injury and wickedness, mity in the creation, and the only reasonable object of abhorrence and dislike." Bishop Butler.
MARK, CHAP.
globe, while the
lost
III.
49
names
It
of
is
and
forgotten.
many kings and rich men are they who do good to souls who
verses,
are
had "in
how many of
the twelve
There are
call
six, at least,
first
to follow
Christ
is
These six
Matthew.
ordained.
It ought to be the
pel.
same with
all
They ought
to be
called
by the
Spirit, before
work
of teaching others.
"
same
converted, then
strict
make about
for orders.
An unconverted minister is utterly unfit for his office. How can he speak experimentally of that grace which he has never tasted himself ? How can he
commend
that Saviour to his people
whom
he himself
only knows by
name ?
How
which he himself
who persuade
become clergymen,
60
profession
is
!
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
What
and
is it
not true,
to
name
in
vain?
None do such
the
infidel,
injury to
of Christianity, as
are a support to
to
They
and an offence
God.
Let us
office
to
They were
to
They were
to
to
be "sent forth to
to heal sicknesses."
They were
They were
They
apostles,
contain
much
doubt,
instruction.
beyond
were a
distinct
men.
They had no
'No
successors
when they
ing, there is
man
did.
unless he can
work
miracles,
and teach
infallibly, as
they
But
stni, in
saying
this,
we must
in
many
and models
in mind,
Bearing
this
Like the
ought to keep
up
close
communion with
Christ.
He
should be
much
"with Him."
(1
John
i.
3.)
He
He
like
should be
and daily
sit,
Mary, at
He
should study
Him,
copy Him,
He
when he
enters the
MARK, CHAP.
pulpit,
III.
6i
"that which
we have
i.
we
3.)
Like the
preacher.
apostles,
He must
place
i.
17.)
He must He
exalt
it
An
unpreaching minister
is
of
little
of Christ.
peter, a sleeping
watchman, a painted
Like the
must labour
to
sick,
he must seek
ness
to be
to alleviate sorrow,
to increase happi-
among all with whom he has to do. He must strive known as the comforter, the counsellor, the peaceall.
Men
should
know him, not as one who one who is "their servant for
Like the
every work of the devil.
rules
must oppose
Though not
and
to
called
now
to cast
the soul.
balls,
sensual gratifications.
temptations.
own
peculiar
Many
Satan.
is
But
most
How
heavy
great
is
duty
52
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
all
No wonder
"Pray
enemies.
that
to the churches,
for us."
Let us
how
His
We
are
"went out
to lay
he
is
is
beside himself."
There
prophet
The
fel-
who came
ix.
Jehu was
of
called a
"mad
low." (2 Kings
Few
things
human
nature more
religion.
clearly,
But
zeal about
and
the sign of a
weak mind.
is a diligent
If a
man
by
found " He
:
no
fault is
man."
But
"He
if
he wears him-
self out
good to
the cry
is
raised,
is
an enthusiast
not altered.
The world
is
The "things
Let
14.)
if
same cup
flesh
and blood
no new thing.
words,
"He
me
is
Jesus
knows
MARK, CHAP.
III.
53
Let us bear patiently the unreasonableness of unconverted men, even as our Lord did.
the
less.
Above
all, let
their hearts.
Who
can
who
now new
try to turn us
away from
themselves ?
MARK
22
in. 2230.
I
And
He
hath
Beelzebub, and by the prince of the devils casteth he out devils. 23 And he called them unto him, and said unto them in parables, How can Satan cast out Satan ? 24 And if a kingdom be divided against itself, that kingdom cannot
stand.
27 No man can enter into a strong man's house, and spoil his goods, except he will first bind the strong man; and then he will spoU his house.
28 Verilj' I say unto you, All sins shall be forgiven unto the sons of men,
25 26
that house cannot stand. if Satan rise up against himself, and be divided, he cannot stand, but hath an end.
itself,
And
and blasphemies wherewith soever they shall blaspheme 29 But he that shall blaspheme against the Holy Ghost hath never forgiveness, but is in danger of eternal damnation 30 Because they said, He hath an
:
unclean
I
spirit.
"We
right.
all
know how
It
is
painful
it
is
to
when we
endure continually,
"We have an instance in the passage before us. The " Scribes which came down from Jerusalem " saw the
miracles which
reality.
They could not deny their "What then did they do? They accused our
worked.
He
They
said,
"He
54
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
to this
wicked accusation,
special
attention.
"We ought
evil
how great
is
the
of dissensions
is
and
divisions.
is
This
a lesson which
He
shows
own power.
He
is
must
division.
that
sufficient con-
On no
much
evil.
The
divisions
church.
They
often
weU bestowed on
They help the
better
They
Satan indeed
is
make
better
None knows
conquer."
" to divide
is to
Let us
ences, dissensions,
and disputes in
religion.
Let us loathe
"We
it is
saving truths.
But
MARK, CHAP.
and
zeal about
III.
55
about tbe truth.
mere
trifles
for zeal
Nothing
justifies separation
Let us be ready
sake
of unity
and peace.
We
Lord makes
He
says,
"
be
for-
These words
fall lightly
on the ears of
many
persons.
They
see
But
to the
man
and deeply sensible of his need of mercy, these words are sweet and precious. " AU
alive to his
who is
own
sinfulness
The
sins of
^the
God's commandments,
nasseh,
the
the
the
sins of
Ma-
sins of
who
like
crucified
Him,
all,
Peter,
the
all
from Christ,
of
aU may be forgiven.
away.
all
The blood
The
is
righteousness of Christ
eyes.
can cover
all,
and hide
from God's
The
down
the gospel.
The very
first
thing
proposes to
man man
is
without
is
price.
"Through
;
this
and by
Him aU
39.)
xiii.
this doctrine
without
delay, if
we
before.
It
is for us,
56
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
too,
We
this
very day,
completely forgiven.
scarlet,
to Christ,
sins
may be
18.)
have been as
i.
we have
really
re-
already.
We
may
sometimes
if
feel faint,
and
But
we have
come
are
by
faith,
They
^blotted
remembrance,
believe
.
sunk into
afraid.
to he lost
Let us
and not be
We ought to notice,
it is
possible
for ever in
hell.
The words
of
He
speaks of one
who
is
in danger of eternal
damnation."
This
truth,
is
But
it
is
it.
We
is
Figures
of
all
employed, in order to
make
it
plain
and unmistakeable.
In
short, if there is
nation,"
we may throw
We have
who
away.
Men's
ears are being tickled with plausible sayings about " the
God
per-
The
eternity of punish-
ment
is
MARK, CHAP.
about which
the midst of
111.
67
men may
^In
that there
is
an eternal God,
an
eternal heaven,
and an
infinite
eternal hell.
It needed
Let us
an
infinite evil.
an atonement of
its
believer from
loss
consequences,
and
entails
an
rejects the
fall
remedy provided
for
Above
all,
let
us
One
plain text
is
an "eternal damnot
fall
we ourselves do
Let us escape
for
and never
rest
till
we know and
feel that
we
And
Of
ashamed of seeking
sin, worldliness,
may
well be ashamed.
have endeavoured to cut the knot of the by maintaining that the sin here refeired to was entirely confined to the time when our Lord was on earth. They say that when the Scribes and Pharisees saw the evidence of our Lord's miracles, and yet refused to believe in Him as the Messiah, they committed the unpardonable sin. Their assertion that our Lord worked miracles through Beelzebub, was blasphemy against the
interpreters
difficulty,
Some
Holy Ghost.
There might be something in
consideration stood entirely alone,
under
58
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
MARK m.
31 There came then his brethren and his mother, and, standing without, sent unto him, calling him. 32 And the multitude sat about him, and they said unto him, Behold,
3135.
is
or my brethren ? looked round about on them which sat about him, and said, Behold my toother and my brethren 35 For whosoever shall do the will of God, the same is my brother, and
Who
34
my mother,
And he
my sister,
and mother.
In the
verses
this passage,
we
in.
They
said,
zebub, and by
devils."
this
that Jesus
had
man who would assert that there were no hardened Scribes and Pharisees among the 3000 converted and forgiven on the day
But, unfortunately for this theory, the doctrine here be found in other places of Scripture beside this. I allude of course to the well-known jjassages, Heb. vi. 4 6. Heb. X. 26., and 1 John v. 17. In all these places there seems a reference to a sin which is not forgiven.
laid
of Pentecost.
down
is to
What
then
its
is
fessed that
tellectual
precise nature
that
knowledge of the Gospel, with deliberate rejection of it, and wilful choice of sin. It is an union of light in the head, and hatred in the heart. Such was the case of Judas Iscariot. We must not flatter ourselves that none have walked in his steps. In the absence of any definition in Scripture, we shall probably not get much nearer to the mark than this. Yet even this view must be cai'efuUy handled. The limits which knowledge combined with unbelief must pass, in order to become the unpardonable sin, are graciously withheld from us. It is mercifully ordered of God, that man can never decide positively of any brother, that he has committed a sin which cannot be forgiven.
But although
is, it is
it
is difficult
to define
sin
on
few words far less difficult to point out what it is not. this point may possibly help to relieve tender consciences.
We may lay it down as nearly certain, that those who are troubled with fears that they have sinned the unpai'donable ain.
MARK, CHAP.
to endure at this time.
III.
59
We
and
his
They could not yet understand the life that our Lord was living.
Though they
himself."
Little
doubtless loved
to cease
Him
well, they
would fain
when He was
must be about
my
ii.
49.)
are the very people who have not sinned it. The very fact that they are atraid and anxious about it, is the strongest possible evidence in their favour. A troubled conscience, an anxiety about salvation, and a dread of being cast away, a concern about the next world, and a desu*e to escape from the vn*ath of God, will probably never be found in the heart of that ferson, who has sinned the sin for which there is no forgiveness, t is far more probable that the general marks of such a person will be utter hardness of conscience, a seared heart, an absence of any feeling, a thorough insensibility to spiritual concern. The There is such a thing as a sin subject may safely be left here. which is never forgiven. But those who are troubled about it, are most unlikely to have committed it.
The following quotation from Thomas Fuller deserves attention " The sin against the Holy Ghost is ever attended with these
two symptoms,
giveness.
absence of
if
all contrition,
and of
all desire
of for-
thou canst truly say that thy sins are a burden that thou dost desire forgiveness, and wouldst give anyto thee, thing to attain it, be of good comfort thou hast not yet, and, by God's grace, never shall commit that unpardonable offence. I will not define how near tliou hast been unto it. As David said to Jonathan, 'there is but a step between me and death,' so, may be, thou hast missed it very narrowly but assure thyself thou art not as yet guilty thereof" Fullers Cause and Cure of a Wounded
Now,
Conscience.
* The remarks of Scott on the conduct of our Lord's mother on worth quoting " It is plain that many of these intimations were suited, and doubtless prophetically intended, to be a Scriptural protest against the idolati-ous honour, to this day, by vast multitudes, rendered to Mary the mother of Jesus. She
:
60
It
is
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
Interesting to
remark the
all
discouragements.
None
moved Him.
The slanderous
to turn
suggestions
Him
He had
crown.
His face as a
flint
world to
the
and was
straitened
xii.
50.)
So
let
it
be with
Let
moment
make them
stop
way
to the well-intentioned
am
vi. 3.)
Let them
it
say,
"I have
and I
away."
was, no doubt, an excellent and honourable character, but evidently not perfect. She is entitled to great estimation, and high veneration, but surely not to religious confidence and worship." It is ditficult to mention any doctrine more completely destitute of Scriptural foundation, than the Romish doctrine of the efficacy of the Virgin Mary's intercession, or the utility of addressing our prayers to her. As to the doctrine of the immaculate conception of the Virgin Mary, which has been lately accredited by the Romish Church, it is a mere man-made figment, without a single word of Scripture to support it. Holy and full of gi-ace as the Virgin Maiy was, it is plain that she regarded herself as one " bom in sin," and needing a Saviour. We have her own remarkable words in evidence of this last point: " My spirit hath rejoiced
in
God my Saviour." (Luke i. 47.) As to the opinion of the Fathers on the conduct of the mother of our Lord in this place, Whitby has collected some curious expres-
sions; "Theophylact taxes her with vain-gloiy and guilt, in endeavouring to draw Jesus from teaching the word. Tertullian pronounceth her guilty of incredulity, Chrysostom of vain-glory, infirmity and madness, for this very thing."
MARK, CHAP.
III.
61
We
Jesm
and
of
Christ.
They
are
of
they
who
is
are
His
disciples,
God."
Of such the
great
Head
my
brother,
and
sister,
and mother."
How much
lievers
!
there
is
What
opens to
all
true be-
Who
Him, and on
can imagine
whose bosom
to the flesh,
He had
been nursed
Who
with
whom
?
of Christ. of God,"
Yet even He
that each
says, of all
who " do
the will
sister,
and
mother."
Let
words.
all
One
at least,
who
knows them,
and reckons
them
this
as
What
world
be ashamed, when
sisters of
What
ill-treated in their
own homes because of their religion ? They may remember the words of David, and apply them to their own case, " When my father and mother
forsake me, then the
10.)
Lord
will take
me
Finally,
let
all
who
persecute
and
ridicule
others
62
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
and repent?
Whom
and ridiculing?
The
the
Son of God
The family of
!
King
of kings
Surely
;
they
would do wisely
what they
are doing.
:
a mighty Friend
Those whom they persecute have " Their redeemer is mighty he shall
(Prov. xxiii. 11.)
MARK
1
IV. 120.
that are without, all these things are done in parables 12 That seeing they may see, and not perceive and hearing they may hear, and not imderstand lest at any time they should be converted, and their sins should be forgiven them. 13 And he said unto them, Know ye not this parable ? and how then will ye know all parables } 14 The sower soweth the word. 15 And these are they by the way side, where the word is sown but when they have heard, Satan cometh immediately, and taketh away the word that was sown in their hearts. 16 And these are they likewise which are so\vn on stony ground who, when they have heard the word, immediately receive it with gladness 17 And have no root in themselves, and so endure but for a time afterward, when affliction or persecution ariseth for the word's sake, immediately they are offended. 18 And these are they which are sown among thorns ; such as hear the
;
;
to teach
by
the sea side and there was gathered unto him a great multitude, so that he entered into a ship, and sat in the sea and the whole multitude was by the sea on the land. 2 And he taught them many things by parables, and said imto them in his
;
Behold, there went out a sower to sow 4 And it came to pass, as he sowed, some fell by the way side, and the fowls of the air came and devoured
;
doctrine, 3 Hearken
it
fell on stony ground, and it had not much earth immediately it sprang up, because it had no depth of earth 6 But when the sun was up, it was scorched and because it had no root, it withered away. 7 And some fell among thorns, and the thorns grew up, and choked it, and it yielded no fruit. 8 And other fell on good ground, and did yield fruit that sprang up and increased; and brought forth, some thirty, and some sixty, and some an hundred. 9 And he said unto them, He that hath ears to hear, let him hear. 10 And when he was alone, they that were about him with the twelve asked of him the parable. 11 And he said unto them, Unto you it is given to know the mystery of the kingdom of God but unto them
where
word, 19 And the cares of this world, and the deceitfulness of riches, and the lusts of other things entering in, choke the word, and it becometh unfruitful. 20 And these are they which are sown on good ground such as hear the word, and receive it, and bring
;
forth fruit,
sixty,
MARK, CHAP.
rv.
63
These
Of
all
probably so
is
well-known as
this.
There
is
none which
so easily
which
it
contains.*
There
is
none which
is
of
The language of the parable requires no explanation. To use the words of an ancient writer, "it needs apLet us now see what it plication, not exposition."
teaches.
We
a field.
first
some
These are they who hear sermons, but pay no attention to them.
They go
to a place of worship,
for form,
But
It
It is neither
liar things,
* " Our Saviour borroweth his comparisons from easy and famisuch as the sower, the seed, the gi'ound, the growth, the withering, the answering or failing of the sower's expectations, all of them things well known, and by all these would teach us
some sphitual
is
instniction.
For there
is
no earthly
thing,
which
not fitted to put us in mind of some heavenly. Christ cannot look upon the sun, the wind, fire, water, a hen, a little grain of mustard seed, nor upon ordinary occasions, as the penny given for the day's work, the wedding gannent and ceremonies of the Jews about it, nor the waiting of servants at their master's table, or children asking bread and fish at their father's table, but he ai)])lies all to some special use of edification in grace. Karlhly things must remind us of heavenly. We must translate the book of nature into the book of grace." Thomas Taylor on the Parable of the Sower. 1634.
64
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
company
and
as they sit
under
the sound
things.
if it,
It matters nothing
whether
it is
law or Gospel.
It produces no
stone.
more
effect
And
at the
this state
There
is
them
Sunday
after
Sun-
sown on the
live on,
Week
after
week they
or grace,
without
or knowledge,
no more
And
stony
ground in a field.
whom
They take
is
the truth
ing to
it.
to tears
by the appeals of
their
fears.
preachers,
and
there
is
no
stability
root in themselves,
and
MARK, CHAP.
a time."
IV.
65
There
is
no real work of the Holy Ghost withTheir impressions are like Jonah's
in a night
in their hearts.
gourd, which
came up
They fade
"
affliction
No
sooner does
and persecution
fall
than they
away.
Their
It
no more
life
in
it
has no
root,
There are
Gospel,
careless
many
in every congregation
who
They feel a
they
listen,
and therefore
And
There
they
aR
some
the thorny
ground
in
a field.
to the preaching of Christ's
it.
and
to
Their underit.
standing assents to
* All who wish to understand the character of the " Stonygi-ound hearers," should study the treatise of Jonathan Edwards, on the Religious Affections. Few Christians, who have not looked into the subject, have any idea of the lengths to which a person may go in religious feelings, while he is at the same time utterly destitute of the grace of God.
66
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
is
Their conscience
in favour of
it.
affected
by
it.
They acknowledge
all
right,
reception.
They even
and adopt
many things which the Gospel condemns, many habits which the Gospel requires. But
Something appears
to
chain them fast, and they never get beyond a certain point
in their religion.
tion
is
the world.
And the grand secret of their condi"The cares of the world, and the
and the
lusts of
effect oth*^r things,"
its full
is
deceitfulness of riches,
on their
souls.
With
They never
come up
tianity.
to the full
standard of
New
Testament Chris-
They bring no
fruit to perfection.
who
could
Of
all,
all cases
most melancholy.
to see so
To go
so far
and yet go no
much and
to
approve so
is
much
heart, this
indeed most
And
there
is
they will never enter the kingdom of heaven. Christ will have all our hearts. " If any man will be a friend of
the world, he
is
the
enemy
of God."
(James
iv. 4.)
We
hearers of
in afield.
and obey
be
thoroughly.
In these the
MARK, CHAP.
seen,
IV.
67
results in heart
tmiform,
plain,
and unmistakeable
and
life.
itself
in
humility, spiritual-mindedness,
charity.
patience, meekness,
and
The
true
Ghost cannot be
There
soul,
hid.
will
faithfuUy preached.
Their
to
compared
the
may
^videly,
some bringing
forth thirty,
some
sixty,
But
the fruit of the seed falling into good ground will always
visible re-
Without these
let
things, there is
no saving
are
religion.
And now
which
us ask ourselves,
What
we
?
?
Under
class of hearers
ought we to be ranked
With
^Never,
what kind
never
ing without
of hearts do
we hear
the word.?
may we
ways of hear-
profit,
Never, never
fallible
may we
fruit.
mark
to
That
be in
bear
To be without
fruit, is to
to hell.
MARK.
IV. 2125.
i
.'
and not
to
be
68
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
ye mete, it shall be measured to you and unto you that hear shall more be
:
22 For there is nothing hid, which shall not be manifested neither was any thing kept secret, but that it should come abroad. 23 If any man have ears to hear,
;
given.
let
25 For he that hath, to him shall be given and he that hath not, from him shall be taken even that which
:
Take
he hath.
These
verses
seem intended
who heard
it.
They
are
arrest
an ignorant hearer.
They
often
and
stick in the
is
subject
of the sermon
forgotten.*
verses, that loe ought not only to
We learn
from these
impart
it to others.
candle
is
and used.
Rebut
man
"We are
and
our knowledge.
We are to
we have
them
seek
it
for themselves.
We
them
of the
* The passage
now under
consideration
is
one among
many
proofs, that our Lord used the same words and the same ideas on many different occasions. The proverbial saying about the " candlestick under a bushel," will be found in the Sei-mon on the Moimt. So also the saying, " there is nothing hid that shall not
be manifested," and the saying, "with what measure ye mete, it are both to be found in the Gosshall be measured to you again," pel of St. Matthew, but in both cases in an entirely different connexion from the passage in St. Mark now before us. (Matt. x. 26,
and Matt.
vii. 2.)
The needless difsubject is one that deserves attention. ficulties that have been created by attempting to harmonize the Gospels, and to make out that our Lord never said the same tiling more than once, are neither few nor small.
The
MARK, CHAP.
IV.
69
to
make
them beheve
it
and value
have
it
themselves.
knowburied
ment
lazy,
will
in the
day of judg-
If
we have
^if
we have been
content with a
do-nothing
Christianity,
what happened
ourselves,
to others, so long as
we went
to
heaven
there will be
" There
is
and spread
religious
knowledge,
good and
Christ's
diffuse light is a
all
To do members of
if
Church are
responsible,
to
whether ministers or
neighbours,
laymen.
Neighbours ought
tell
they
others
if
it.
What
" As every
man
even so minister
iv. 10.)
They
is
will
obeyed.
We
hear.
learn,
importance of hearing,
and of
considering
well what
we
This
is
great weight.
We
have seen
it
We
here enforced in
70
ear to hear, let
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
him hear."
is
hearing."
conversion
(Rom.
is
x. 17.)
One
to
of the
steps towards
ear.
to receive
and
faith
in
The general
rule is that of
also trusted,
i.
which
St.
after that
(Eph.
13.)
Let us bear
decried as a
means of grace.
it
men
it
who
is
seek to cast
it.
Bible gives
read,
to hear
God's
word expounded.
Let
it
Of
all
such notions
vrith
let
us beware.
be a settled principle
is
word,"
God
Let
^ls
means and
But never
let us forget the words of St. Paul, " despise not pro-
2 Tim.
iv. 2.)
* " Public and continual preaching of God's word is the ordinarysalvation of mankind. St. Paul calleth it the ministiy of reconciliation of man unto God. By
God is enlarged, faith is nourished, and charity increased. By it the ignorant is instructed, the negligent exhorted and invited, the stubbora rebuked, the weak conscience comforted, and to all those that sin of malicious wickedness, the wrath of God is threatened. By preaching, due obedience to Christian princes and magistrates is planted in the hearts of subjects for obedience j^roceedeth of conscience, conscience is grounded upon the word of God, the word of God
praaching of God's word, the glory of
:
MARK, CHAP.
IV.
71
verses, the im-
We learn,
He
from these
What
and he
that hath, to
him
shall he given
him
shall be taken
he hath."
This
is
a principle which
we
forward in Scripture.
doubtedly of grace.
ness,
un-
to
which
and
his
own
up
to the light
Labour
own
fat."
reward.
(Prov.
"The
soul
made
xiii. 4.)
"
An
the
main
secret of
in spiritual attainments,
The man who makes rapid progress who grows visibly in grace, and
will always be
He
He
is
diligent
Lord's table.
And
Just
worketh his effect by preaching. So as generally when preaching wanteth obedience faileth." Archbishop Orindais Letter to Queen
Elizabeth.
72
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
by
dili-
Do we
Do we
desire to
have
Beyond doubt we
let
do, if
we
Then
us live fully
up
to our light,
portunity.
passage.
"
Let us never forget our Lord's words in this With what measure we mete " to our souls,
"
it
shall
be measured to us again."
The more we do
does for them.
for
we
find
God
MARK
26
IV. 2629.
fruit of herself; first the blade, then the ear, after that the full com in the ear. 29 But when the fruit is brought forth, immediately he putteth in the sickle, because the harvest is come.
And he
said,
So
is
the kingdom
27 And should sleep, and rise night and day, and the seed should spring and grow up, he knoweth not how. 28 For the earth bringeth forth
The
to
is short,
and only
be deeply interesting
to all
that
the
It
history of the
work
too far.
rising
'*
In
this,
many of our
Lord's parables,
in view the
object of the
and
MARK, CHAP.
not lay too
fore US the
IT.
73
In the case be-
much
stress
on
lesser points.
is
heart.
To
We
The
itself.
are taught
firstly, that,
as in the
growth of com,
so in the
work
earth, as
we aU know, never
it,
brings forth
com
of
It
is
The
and
The heart
turn to
man,
in like
itself
It is utterly
barren of grace.
unable to give
must break
it
up by His
Spirit,
and give
He must
scatter over it
by the hand
Let us mark
man
sent
is
an
exotic.
It
is
new
in his soul.
Left
yet
to himself
man
And
in
To
is
and preachers,
to expect
com where no
work of
We
com,
so in the
much
tJiat
is be-
The
wisest farmer
He knows
into
74
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
it
com
in time of harvest.
He
life
cannot explain
why some
itself.
die.
He
shall begin to
life is.
show
He
He
7.)
The workings
utterly mysterious
and unsearchable.
We
cannot explain
why
in
gation,
We
with every every people tinue dead in and every why other with no encouragement, people
some
spite of
possible advantage,
reject the word,
and in
entreaty,
and con-
trespasses
sins.
We
cannot explain
in
cases,
^with
possible difficulty,
and
come decided
in
Christians.
Spirit of
We cannot define
life*
the
manner
and
which the
God conveys
to a soul,
new
see
We
but
we can go no
further.
"The
man,
will sprout
ear,
stem the
and shoot; the shoot will disclose the stem, the and the ear the fruit and were the most illiterate and
:
un philosophical person to be asked why all follow from the mere act of burying a seed
in the earth, he might be disposed to laugh at the apparent simplicity of the question. Yet no human wisdom was ever able to retiuTi the answer to this
question, no human sagacity ever yet could penetrate into the true causes of this effect and no human knowledge, upon such subjects, has ever gone further than the mere discovery, by a regular and constant experience, that such and such consequences will uniformly follow from such and such previous acts." GresweU on the Parables. Vol. 2 ; p. 132.
;
MARK, CHAP.
IV.
76
it
listeth,
tell
whence
it is
cometh, and
goeth
iii.
bom
of the
(John
Let us mark
It
is
humbling no doubt
to ministers,
and teachers of
others.
ing, the
The highest
abilities,
God
time,
But
it is
overis
carefulness
and despondency.
"
Our
principal
work
to
sow the
seed.
faith
rise
and
We may sleep,
He
and
night
alone
He
He
thinks
fit,
We
com,
80 in the
work
is
of grace,
life
There
nothing at a bound."
The
ripe ear of
"
first
But
in all these stages one great thing at its weakest, it is a living plant.
true about
it,
even
The work
by
degrees.
The
children of
God
Their be-
ginning
is
generally a
"day
of small things."
They
see
in part their
own
sinfulness,
and
Christ's fulness,
and the
beauty of holiness.
in God's family
is
But
weakest child
With
all his
76
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
lie
is
alive.
The seed
of grace
it
be
He
is
And
man
says,
Let us mark
weak, or think
The
an acorn.
The
strongest
man
no grace at
all.
We are taught,
so in the
ripe.
lastly, that, as in
is
work
of grace, there
no harvest
the seed
is
wheat when
it is
green.
He
waits
till
down.
sickle,
and
God
way.
work
same
He
work
He
till
done.
They never
wrong time,
man.
Josiah,
we
needs-be.
MARK, CHAP.
as about their births.
cuts
IV.
77
The
ripe.
Grreat
Husbandman never
on our minds,
believer.
His corn
till it is
this truth
Let
that there
is
no chance, no accident, no
They are all "God's husbandry," and when they are ready for the harvest.
Grod
knows
best
MAEK
rV. 3034.
80 that the fowls of the air may lodge under the shadow of it. 33 And with many such parables spake he the word unto them, as they es
;
30 And he said, Whereunto shall we liken the kingdom of God ? or with what comparison shall we compare it ? 31 It is like a grain of mustard seed, which, when it is sown in the earth, is less than all the seeds that be in the earth 32 But when it is sown, it groweth up, and becometh greater than all herbs, and shooteth out great blanch-
were able to hear it. 34 But without a parable spake he not unto them and when they were alone, he expounded all things to his
:
disciples.
The
is
The seed
cast
showed us the
work
of grace in a heart.
We
weak in
mustard
was
to
be small
and
its
beginnings.
A grain of
among
78
cant.
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
Our Lord
calls
it
tlie
seeds that
be in the earth."
figure as a
faith.
speaking of a weak
Luke
xvii. 6.)
The
how-
ever strange
places, the
may sound
to
us.
Here, as in other
whom we
address.
mustard seed.
beginning.
How
did
its
He came
as a
manger
of the
at
Bethlehem, without
Who were
and men
the
men
that the
Head
^fishermen, publicans,
What was
Head
of the
Church
two
He was
crucified, like
a malefactor, between
all Hi's
thieves, after
disciples,
What
was the doctrine which the first builders of the Church went forth from the upper chamber in Jerusalem to preach
to
mankind
It
to the
Jews was
It
their
new
to
death on a
cross,
and that
MARK, CHAP.
notwithstanding
to the
this,
IV.
79
through His death
they offered
the
life
world
In
all this
mind
of
man
can perceive
To the eyes
of
man
the beginning of
and small.
in the second place, that, like the
We learn,
seed,
mustard
was
to
grow and
greatly increase.
"The
it is
"when
herbs."
ear.
These words
may sound
But
startling to
an English
We
distinct,
is
No
to the
more
strikingly applicable
visible
church in
the world.
began
to
rapidity,
It
* To show the size to which the mustard plant will grow in Eastern Countries, Lightfoot quotes the following passage from Rabbinical writers. "There was a stalk of mustard in Sichim, from which sprang out three boughs, one of which was broken oft", and covered the tent of a potter, and produced three cabs of mustard." Kabbi Simeon Ben Chalaphta said, *' a stalk of mustard seed was in my field, into which 1 are wont to climb into a fig-tree."
was wont
to climb, as
men
The enormous
tlie
oui-s,
which the rhododendron, the heath, and some climates which suit them, better than should be remembered by an English reader of this parable.
size to
80
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
five
thousand
more
It
grew wonderfully,
when
It
grew wonderfully,
when
and opposition,
Roman
empire.
But
it
was
God
is
like a grain of
mustard seed."
The
visible
it is still
New branches
South Seas,
fifty
years.
Evils
un-
False profession
and corrupis
But
still,
spite of all
still
grows.
rest assured, is not yet
And
we may
exhausted,
when
the great
Head
The
MARK, CHAP.
the waters cover the sea.
(Isai.
ii.
IV.
81
Satan shall yet be
inheritance,
2.)
bound.
possession.
And
fill
accomplishment.
the
The
little
35.)
to
of Christ, because at
weak and
small.
Let us
The name of Him who lay there, a helpless infant, is now known all over the globe. The little seed which was planted in the day when Jesus was bom, has become a great tree, and we ourselves are rejoicing under its
shadow. Let it be a settled principle in our religion, never to " despise the day of small things." (Zech. iv. 10.)
One
child
may
the beginning of some blessed christian enterseed the beginning of a rich harvest of saved
souls.*
* It
is
meanmg
fair to say that the view which I have adopted of the of this parable, is not the view which is held by some
intei-preters.
that the parable is intended to show the progress of work of grace in the heart of an individual believer. I am not prepared to say that this may not have been in our Lord's
Some think
the
mind, in speaking the parable. I think it quite possible that the parable admits of a double intei-pretation; for the experience of a believer and the e.xperience of the whole church, are much the same. My principal objection to this view is, that it does not appear to suit the language of the parable so well as tliat which I have maintained.
Some few interpreters think that the mustard seed signifies the principle of evil and corruption, and that the main object of the
82
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
MARK
35
IV. 35-41.
Master, carest thou not that we perish ? 39 And he arose, and rebuked the wind, and said unto the sea. Peace, be still. And the wind ceased, and there was a great calm.
the same day, when the even was come, he saith unto them. pass us over unto the other side. Let 36 And when they had sent away the multitude, they took him even as he was in the ship. And there were also with him other little ships. 37 And there arose a great storm of wind, and the waves beat into the ship, so that it was now full. 38 And he was in the hinder part of the ship, asleep on a pillow: and they awake him, and say unto him.
And
Why
have no
41
faith
.'
And
and said one to another. What manner of man is this, that even the wind and the sea obey him ?
These verses describe a storm on the sea of Galilee, when our Lord and His disciples were crossing it, and a
miracle performed by our Lord in calming the storm in a
moment.
Few
minds of the
disciples as this.
Four
and
of
them
at least
were fishermen.
Peter,
Andrew, James,
Galilee,
Few
parable is to show how insidiously apostasy would begin in the church, and how completely it would at last overgrow and fill the whole body. I own that I cannot for a moment see the soundness To say nothing of other reasons, there of this interpretation. seems an excessive harshness in this sense, when we consider the opening words of the parable, " Wherewith sliall we liken the kingdom of God?" One would rather expect the question to have been "wherewith shall we liken the kingdom of the devil? " if the whole parable is occupied with describing the progi-ess of evil.
of " the fowls of the air," is Many think that it signifies the number of converts to Christianity, wlio as the church increased, joined themselves to it, and came " as doves to the windows." (Isaiah Ix. 8.) Some think that it signifies the mimber of worldly and false professors wlio joined the church from mere carnal motives, when it began to be great and prosperous, as in the days of Constantine. When we remember that the "fowls of the air," in the parable of the sower, (Mark. iv. 4 15.) are declared by our Lord Himself to mean " Satan," we must admit that there is considerable force in this interpretation.
meaning
MARK, CHAP.
joumejongs
to
IV.
83
contain
and
fro
upon
earth,
more
rich
Let us
that
Christ's service
His
servants
from
storms.
He
They
to
whatever Scribes and Pharisees might think, they believed on Jesus, loved Jesus,
to
give
up
all for
trouble, tossed
Yet here we see these men in up and down by a tempest, and in danger
His sake.
this lesson.
of being drowned.
If
we
it
we must not
to
journey to heaven.
if
We must count
like other
no strange thing,
bereavements,
we have
endure sicknesses,
losses,
men.
Free pardon
glory at the
and
end,
full forgiveness,
grace by the
way and
have no
all this
But He
we
shall
afflictions.
He
By affliction He teaches
it
us
many
we
should
never learn.
By
affliction
He
long
"
it is
good for
me
that I
was
afflicted."
We shall thank
Lord Jesus
God
Let us
We
84
verses, that
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
when
He
like
our own,
thirst,
and
feel pain,
No wonder that His body needed repose at this time. He had been diligent in His Father's business all the day. He had been preaching to a great multitude in the open air. No wonder that " when the even was
come," and His work
finished,
he
fell
"asleep."
Let us mark
in
The Saviour
whom we are bid to trust, is as really man as He is God. He knows the trials of a man, for He has experienced them. He knows the bodily iufirmities of a man, for He has felt them. He can well understand what we mean, when we cry to Him for help in this world of need. He is just the very Saviour that men
and women, with weary frames and aching heads,
weary world, require
night.
for their comfort every
in a
morning and
"
We
priest
which cannot be
iv.
Let us
Lord Jesus
see
Christ, as
We
Him
in
proverbially impossible.
He
He
speaks
to the waves,
to
His command.
He
Him
the
"Peace, be
still."
who
first
created
Kke obedient
were
MARK, CHAP.
Let us mark
minds.
ble.
IV.
85
it
and lay
np in our
is
With
impossi-
No stormy passions are so strong but He can tame No temper is so rough and violent but He can change it. No conscience is so disquieted, but He can speak peace to it, and make it calm. No man ever need despair, if He will only bow down his pride,
them.
to Christ.
Christ can
No
man
Christ will
make him
con-
every
foe.
What
?
oppose us
scorn ?
What though our neighbours laugh us to What though our place be hard ? What
It
is all
nothing, if
on our
is
side,
Greater
He
we
is
that
for us,
than
all
against us.
Finally,
tJiat
our Lord
Jesus Christ
with
sion
and
pitiful in dealing
We
unseemly
They
forgot their
and care
for
them
cried,
and
we perish?"
We see our
them.
He
gives
Lord dealing most gently and tenderly with them no sharp reproof. He makes no
threat of casting
them
off,
He
86
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
Why
"
are ye so fear-
How
pitiful
is it
is
Lord
fear
Him."
(Psalm
ciii.
13.)
He He
sees
He
the
He knows
love,
all
and courage.
And
yet
He
them
off.
He
bears with
them
raises
err.
continually.
He
loves
fall.
them even
to the end.
He
He
restores
like
His
When He
many
sees
a heart right,
His
a short-coming.
re-
His heart
is still
it
was when
He
in
and
stilled
the storm.
is still
High
heaven
at the right
hand
still
of Grod, Jesus
pitiful
sympathizing,
still
almighty,
Let us be more
faith.
charitable
They may
many
them and can bear with them, surely we may bear with them too. Let us be more hopeful about ourselves.
We
may be
frail,
and unstable
to Christ
but
if
we can
we do come
and believe
on Him, we
may
take comfort.
MARK, CHAP.
V.
87
question
to
is,
we perfect as we shall be in Leaven ? " The "Are we real and true in our approaches Do we truly repent and believe ?" *
Christ?
MAEK
over unto the 1 other side of the sea, into the country of the Gadarenes. 2 And when he was come out of the ship, immediately there met him out of the tombs a man with an unclean
spirit,
V. 117.
10 And he besought him much that he would not send them away out of
the country.
11 Now there was there nigh unto the mountains a great herd of swine
feeding.
12
;
saying,
tombs
had been often bound with fetters and chains, and the chains had been plucked asunder by him, and the fetters broken in pieces neither could any man tame him. 5 And always, night and day, he was in the mountains, and in the tombs, crying, and cutting himself
with stones.
6 But when he saw Jesus afar off, he ran and worshipped him, 7 And cried with a loud voice, and said, What have I to do with thee, Jesus, t/iou Son of the most high God ? I adjure thee by God, that thou tonnent me not. 8 For he said unto him. Come out of the man, thou unclean spirit. 9 And he asked him. What ia thy name ? And he answered, saying. My
we may 13 And forthwith Jesus gave them leave. And the unclean spirits went
out, and entered into the swine and the herd ran violently down a steep place into the sea, (they were about two thousand ;) and were choked in the sea. 14r And they that fed the swine fled, and told it in the city, and in the country. And they went out to see what it was that was done. 15 And they come to Jesus, and see him that was possessed with the devil, and had the legion, sitting, and clothed, and in his right mind and they
:
:
devils besought him, into the swine, that enter into them.
were
16
afraid.
And
it told
them
how it
befel to him that was possessed with the devil, and also concerning
name
is
legion
for
we
are
many.
the swine. 17 And they began to pray bim to depart out of their coasts.
These
a
the
casting out of
Of
all
New
Testa-
* The sea of Galilee, or Tiberias, on which the circumstances recorded in this passage, took place, is an inland lake, through which the river Jordan flows, about fifteen miles long and six. broad. It lies in a deep valley, much depressed below the level of the sea, its surface being 652 feet below that of the Mediterranean, and is surrounded on most sides by steep
88
ment, none
is
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
so fully described as this one.
Of
all
the
so
three evangelists
who
none gives
it
Mark.
in these verses, that
the
We
see, in
the
first place,
and true
a painful
fact,
that there
professing Christians
miracles.
causes,
who
try to explain
They endeavour
to
to account for
and
traordinary power.
that
it
or
epilepsy,
absurd.
to
The
hills.
best
Owing to these last circumstances, sudden squalls or stoiins are reported by all travellers to be very common on the lake.
The sea of Galilee and the country sun-ounding it, were favoured with more of our blessed Lord's presence, diu'ing His earthly ministry, than any other part of Palestine. Capernaum, Tiberias, Bethsaida, and the country of the Gergesenes were all on its shores, or in the immediate neighboui'hood of this lake. It was on the sea of Galilee that our Lord walked. It was on its shore that He appeared to His disciples after His resuiTection. Sitting in a boat on its waters and in a house hard by. He delivered the seven parables recorded in the 13th chapter of St. Matthew. On its banks, He called Peter, and Andi-ew, James and John. From it. He commanded His disciples to draw the miraculous draught of fishes. Within sight of it. He twice fed the multitude with a few loaves and fishes. On its shore. He healed the man possessed with devils and into it the two thousand swine plunged headlong after that miracle had been wrought.
;
Few localities in the Holy Land were so immediately con* nected with our Lord's ministry as the sea of Galilee and the country round it
MARK, CHAP.
jectlons, is
V.
89
moment.
if
The
facts
we do
It
is
notorious that
and
at
!
a herd of swine
as soon as this
And yet men ask us to believe, that man was healed, two thousand swine
doing
Such reasoning
satisfy
is
the height of
credulity.
Let us beware of a
sceptical
and incredulous
spirit
is
No
let
doubt there
much
which we do not
us not therefore
But
coimtry, and
than the
sion,
man who
it.
understand
We may
of the devil
and
little
his power,
we
are far
more
likely to
believe too
existence
first
step to
"We
see, in
On
of
is full
instruction.
90
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
cruelty of
The
of the
tame him,
he only
He
would
rejoice to inflict
upon us the
The poicer
thy
which
is
asked, "
What
Legion
name?" He answered, saying, "My name is for we are many." We probably have not the
:
Satan's
agents.
We
that he
spirits
is
king over an
his will.
who do
We should
spirits,
probably
find, if
that they are about our path, and about our bed,
all
and observing
we
us,
have no conception.
In private and in
public, in
church
The
"send us
so long inhabited
and possessed,
to injure
Unable
any
more an immortal
soul,
dumb
beasts
Such
is
the true
character of Satan.
MARK, CHAP.
harm,
to kill,
V.
91
that
lie ia
and
to destroy.
No wonder
human
it is
far too
common.
jest
When
and not
till
then,
it
will be
seemly for
mortal
it
man
to talk lightly
all, if
about Satan.
Well would
power
be for us
we
strove
more
to realize the
spiritual
more
to
It
to rest,
"No
prayer
We see,
plete
is
from these
We
see
it
me
not."
We see
in the comspirit,"
and
We
see
it
in the
him
that
was
the
possessed
his right
devils,
sitting,
it
"send
We
see
in the petition of
us into
the
swine,"
confessing their
All these things show that one mightier than Satan was
there.
man
was, he was
One he was
Numerous
"
confronted with
Where
92
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
is,
there
is
power." (Eccles.
viii. 4.)
The
all
is full
true Christians.
snares.
and
with infirmity.
mighty
spiritual
we have a
us,
subtle, powerful,
and malicious
cast us
as
and
in
down.
we have
who
is
He has
He
will ever
aU
believers,
and intercede
them that
And He will finally triumph over Satan completely, when He shall come forth at the second advent, and bind
not.
him
And
power ?
He
reigns
and
who
3.)
He
is
still
his bonds,
him and all his works ? Do we daily resist him and make him flee ? Do we put on the whole armour of God and
stand against his wiles
?
May we
never rest
till
we can
We
We
MARK, CHAP.
I.
93
MAEK
18
ship,
V. 1820.
things the Lord hath done for thee, and hath had compassion on thee. 20 And he departed, and began to fublish in Decapolis how great things
esus had done for
into the
he that had been possessed with prayed him that he might be with him. 19 Howbeit Jesus suffered him not, hut saith unto him. Go home to thy
the
de\'il
him
and
all
men
did marvel.
friends,
and
tell
The
when upon
earth,
is
The
the miraculous cure, and then leaves the after history of the person cured in obscurity, and passes on to other
things.
But
described
and the
like our-
mind
and bones
We can see plainly that there were many persons possessed with devils during our Lord's earthly ministry. We can see plainly
that bodily possession was something distinct from possession of heart and soul. We can conjecture the reason of their permitted possession, to make it plain that onr Lord came to destroy the works of the devil. But we must stop here. can go no
We
fui'ther.
Let
us,
entirely confined to our Lord's time, and that there is no such thing in our own days. This would be a rash and unwarrantable conclusion. Awful as the thought is, there are sometimes cases in asylums for the insane, which, if they are not cates of Satanic In short I believe possession, approach as nearly to it as possible. the opinion of not a few eminent physicians is clear and decided that Satanic possession still continues, though cases are exceed-
was
it would be presumption to handle so fearful a doctrine and to pronounce positively of any particular person that " he had a devil." But if such things have been, and the New Testament puts this beyond question, no good reason can be assigned why they should not be again. Human nature is not changed since our Lord was on earth. Satan is not yet bound. Satanic possession is therefore neither impossible nor improbable, though limits may be set to the frequency of it, through the mercy of God.
94
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
man
tlie
country of
the Gadarenes
one.
The
Few
that the
Lord Jesus
knotvs
to
is
them
be in.
We
the point
man
" that
We can well
He
felt full
He
had
He
He was
Christ.
ready to give
And
was
request
refused.
Our
most.
him
to do.
God
Go home
to thy friends,"
He
says,
"and
tell
them how
for thee,
compassion on thee."
The
is
not always
The
position that
own way,
so
is
There
are
this to
lesson
much
as believers
newly converted
God.
is
Such persons
really for their
what
good.
FuU
of the
MARK, CHAP.
V.
95
them
in a
new
little
knowing
little
time ago they were blind, and now, through mercy, they
see,
making mistakes.
apt to
fall into
With
their
They
forget that
souls,
what we
and
glory.
ways
after conversion,
to err in our
choices, or to
sition is
make
hasty decisions.
for us in
most healthful
humble,
to the
drawn most
by
faith
to live
and
if
not by sight.
Christ
may
we
in
like.
it,
But
let
us not
be in a hurry
The
great thing
have no
and
to
be
seems
to
that
we
are called
glorified
may be
pulpit.
is no proof and qualified to become teachers of others. God as really and truly in the secular calling as in the
Converted men can be eminently usefid as landlords, magistrates, soldiers, sailors, barristers or merchants. want
We
96
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
We
a
tion.
from these
verses, that
his
believer's
on
atten-
We are
our
Lord addresses
" Go home,"
The
likely
friends of this
not seen him for some years, excepting under the influence
of Satan. or worse
anxiety,
Most
to
them,
and sorrow.
of duty.
glorify
God.
him.
work
is
How much
there
Lord
witnesses for Christ in all these professions. Colonel Gai'diner and Capt. Vicars have probably done more for the cause of Christ, as military men, than they would ever have done if they had left the army and become clergymen. In steering our course through life, we should carefully look for the call of providence as well as the call of inclination. The position that we choose for ourselves is often that which is the worst When two conflicting paths of duty lie before a for oiu" souls. believer, the path which has least of the cross, and is most agreeable to his own taste, is seldom the right one. I write all this with a due recollection of many eminent Christians who began in a secular profession, and left it for the office of the minister. John Newton and Edward Bickersteth are instances. But I apprehend such cases are exceptions. I apprehend moreover that in every such case there would be found to have been a remarkable call of providence as well as an inward caU of the Holy Ghost. As a general rule, I believe that the inile of St. Paul ought to be carefully observed " Let every man, wherein he is called, therein abide with God." (1 Cor. vii. 24.)
:
MARK, CHAP.
V.
97
What thougHts they ought to stir up in the hearts of all true Christians " Go home and tell thy friends." Home is
I
all
God ought to
is
make
Home
Home
the place
reality of
where he
the place
where
is
Home
Christ.
Home
is
is
was
daily doing
harm by
Home
is
specially
bound
to
be a
May we
own
all
May
it
we
are saints
But
after all.
Have we
Can
we
testify to
Have we
Have we
we have never yet been bom again, and made new creatures, we can of course have nothing to "tell." If we have anything to tell others about Christ, let us Let us not be silent, if we have found resolve to tell it.
If
Let us speak
to our rela-
and
friends,
and
families,
we have
opportunity, and
tell
done
AU
But
all
steps of the
man
of
whom we H
98
in the steps of
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
Andrew, and
41, 45
;
Philip,
woman. (John
hath done
for
is he who is not 29.) " ashamed to say to others, Come and hear what the Lord
i.
iv.
Happy
my
soul."
MARK
V. 2134.
his garment.
21 And when Jesus was passed over again by ship unto the other side, much people gathered unto him and he was nigh unto the sea. 22 And, behold, there cometh one of the rulers of the synagogue, Jairus
:
28 For she said. If I may touch but his clothes, I shall be whole.
29 And straightway the fountain of her blood was dried up and she felt in her body that she was healed of that plague.
;
by name
fell at
his feet,
30
besought him greatly, saving. My little daughter lieth at the point of death / pray thee, come and lay thy hands on her, that she may be healed and she shall live. 24 And Jesxis went with him and much people followed him, and thronged him. 25 And a certain woman, which had an issue of blood twelve years, 26 And had suffered many things of many physicians, and had spent all that she had, and was nothing bettered, but rather grew worse, 27 When she had heard of Jesus, came in the press behind, and touched 23
:
And
in himself that virtue had gone out of him, turned him about in the press, and said. Who touched my clothes ? 31 And his disciples said unto him, Thou seest the multitude thronging thee, and sayest thou, Who touched
me?
32
And he
this thing. 33 But the woman fearing and trembling, knowing what was done in her, came and fell down before him, and told him all the truth. 34 And he said unto her, Daughter, thy faith hath made thee whole ; go in peace, and be whole of thy plague.
had done
The main
subject
of these
verses
is
is
the miraculous
Q-reat
Q-reat is
!
and
ailing
members
The gods
and the
is
The Saviour
of the Christian
al-
ways
and
set before
weak
sick
MARK, CHAP.
man's best
that
friend.
V.
And
is
human
trouble.
nature needs ?
The world
are far
is
full
of pain
and
more numerous
misery sin has
verses, what
We read of
most painful disease " for twelve years." She had " suffered many things of mp,ny physicians, and had spent
all
was nothing
grew worse."
vain.
Means
skill
of every kind
had been
to cure.
tried in
Medical
Twelve
and
relief
first.
make her
is
heart sick."
How
ease
ailing
marvellous
!
it
that
we do not hate
all
sin
more
be an
than we do
Slq
is
the cause of
in the world.
God
man
to
and
suffering creature.
all
was
sin,
and nothing
is
but
It
sin,
which brought in
sin to
the
ills
that flesh
heir to.
was
liable.
this
ever in mind.
"We are
told in these verses that " much people followed " our Lord, " and thronged him." But we are only told of
"came
in
the
press
behind,"
and
Him
Many
followed
100
EXPOSITORY THOrOHTS.
"We
see the
Church of Christ up
Multitudes go to
our pews.
Hundreds come
But
of
all
these
how
Fashion, cus-
who touch
These
Christ
by
faith,
and
sayings.
But they
and
woman
received.
No
sooner did she touch our Lord's clothes than she was
healed.
The thing
that
many
efiect,
was wrought
an in-
stant of time.
" She
felt in
of that plague."
to see here
an
emblem
The experience
a
many a weary conscience has been this woman with her disease. Many
it.
man
God, and
relief.
has
MARK, CHAP.
at last
V.
101
it?
he has found
it,
rest.
He
has found
where
Christ.
He
He
has ceased
sinner,
His mercy.
At once
Heaviness
touch of
One
is
real
self-imposed austerities.
One
look at Jesus
more
effi-
May we
Personal application
how muck
it
becomes
men
We
woman was
not allowed to
go home, when cured, without her cure being noticed. Our Lord inquired who had touched Him, and " looked
this thing." No He knew perfectly the name and history of the woman. He needed not that any should tell Him. But He desired to teach her, and all around Him, that healed
souls should
received.
make
There
is
a lesson
to
here
which
all
true
Christians
would do well
to
remember.
We
are not to be
ashamed
confess
know
If
we have found
it,
we must
on every
proper occasion.
102
in the streets,
notice.
EXPOSITORY THOLGHTS.
and
is
on every body's
All that
Christ
as
required
is
a willingness to acknow-
ledge
our Master,
we may
bring on ourselves.
More than
but
less
than
of
this
If
we
are
ashamed
He
will
one day be
angels.
last place,
how^precious a grace
to
faith.
the
woman
:
go in
Of aU the
is
so frequently
menis
tioned in the
New
Testament as
faith,
and none
so
highly commended.
to Christ.
Hope
come.
brings an
Faith
brings an
nothing in return.
Christian's
live.
No
By
grace
faith
is
so important to the
own
soul.
we
begin.
By
faith
we
By faith we stand. We walk by faith and not by By faith we overcome. By faith we have peace. By faith we enter into rest. No grace should be the
sight.
subject of so
ourselves.
much
self- inquiry.
"We should
often ask
Do I really beUeve? Is my faith true, genuine, the gift of God ? and May we never rest till we can give a satisfactory
!
Christ
is
day when
this
woman was
to save.
healed.
is
He
is still
gracious
and
if
still
mighty
There
we want
salvation.
the
hand of
MARK, CHAP.
faith.
V.
103
Let a
man
made
whole.*
MARK
35 While he yet spake, there came from the ruler of the synagogue's house certain vrhich said, 1" hy daughter is dead why troublest thou the Master any further ? 36 As soon as Jesus heard the word that was spoken, he saith unto the ruler of the sjTiagogue, Be not afraid, only believe.
:
V. 3543.
dead, but sleepeth.
40
And
they laughed
him to
scorn.
37 And he suffered no man to follow him, save Peter, and James, and John the brother of James. 38 And he cometh to the house of the ruler of the synagogue, and seeth the tumult, and them that wept and
But when he had put them all out, he taketh the father and the mother of the damsel, and them that were with him, and entereth in where the damsel was lying. 41 And he took the damsel by the hand, and said unto her, Talitha cumi which is, being interpreted,
;
wailed greatly. 39 And when he was come in, he saith unto them, Why make ye this ado, and weep the damsel is not
.'
Damsel, I say unto thee, arise. 42 And straightway the damsel arose, and walked for she was of the age of twelve years. And they were astonished with a great astonishment. 43 And he charged them straitly that no man should know it ; and commanded that something should be given her to eat.
;
A
is,
GREAT miracle
there
is
A dead
Mighty
as the he.
are in our
Christ's hands.
He wiU
one day
"swaUow up death
man
* Some remarks of Melancthon's on this woman's case are worth are doubtless to be careful that we do not hastily reading. attach an allegorical and mystical sense to the words of Scripture. Yet we must not forget the depth of meaning which lies in all the acts of our Lords earthly ministry and at any rate there is much beauty in the thoughts which the good Reformer expresses. He says, "This woman doth aptly represent the Jewish synagogue vexed a long time with many mischiefs and miseries, especially tortured with unconscionable princes, and unskilful priests, or physicians of the soul, the Pharisees and Sadducees on whom she had wasted aU her goods, and yet she was not a whit better, but rather much worse, till the blessed Lord of Israel in His own
We
person came
to
'
visit
and redeem
"
her.'
104
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
Jairus was a "ruler;" yet
to his house.
Jairus probably-
command
his child.
yet
The daughters
must
die.
men.
The daughters
"We are
if
of rulers
remember
this.
too apt
We
the posses-
sion of riches
to sorrow,
and as
if
money could
it is
But
We
have only
the contrary.
as to cottages,
Death comes
to
It stands on no ceremony.
It
no man's
leisure or convenience.
It will not be
"It
is
appointed unto
ix.
men
27.)
AU
We
ness
is
is
may
be sure there
is
far
more equality
in the por
tions appointed to
men than
Sick-
am
Happy
!
are they
affections
on things above
is
treasure which
incorruptible.
Yet a
little
and
AU
tears shall be
faces.
They
son,
shall
Never again
shall they
hear
thy
thy
MARK, CHAP.
wife,
V.
105
things will
thy liusband,
is
dead."
The former
Let us
how almighty
is
the
him
was
Lord
for a
moment.
At
comes
once he
spirits
He He
to the
house where
the
many
are weeping
is
lying.
by
arise.'^
At
"The damsel
we
arose
and
walked."
No wonder
for a
that
moment how wonderful was the place in that house. From weeping
to
death to
life,
congratulation,
from
who have
own
their
seen death face to face, and had the light of their households quenched, and
souls.
There
Let us see in
what
He
can
raise
sins,
our chil-
and make
can take
them walk
before
Him
in
newness of
life.
He
106
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
live
Him
them and
rose again.
call
Have we
to
a dead
Let us
ii.
1.)
Let us send
Him
to help.
mighty in power.
Finally, let us see in this miracle a blessed pledge of
will do in the
He win
will
call
He
give
them a
more
His
glorious,
and more
had
mage.
south,
and west,
to part
more.
Believing parents shall once more see believing Believing husbands shall once more see be-
children.
lieving wives.
like those
who
fall asleep
in Christ.
loveliest believer
There
"
is
a glorious
sleep
morning yet
Them which
God
bring with
Him."
Those words shall one day receive a complete fulfilment, " I will ransom them from the power of the grave I will
:
"When
He He
him
lamb
shall
be found missiug.
MARK, CHAP.
MARK.
1 And he went out from thence, and came into his own country ; and his disciples follow him.
VI.
107
VI. 16.
Joses, and of Juda, and Simon and are not his sisters here with us And they were offended at him. 4 But Jesus said unto them, A prophet is not without honour, but in his
.' .'
2 And when the sabbath day was come, he began to teach in the synagogue and many hearing him were astonished, saying, From whence hath
:
things } and what wisdom is this which is given unto him, that even such mighty works are
this
man these
country, and among his own kin, and in his own house. 5 And he could there do no mighty work, save that he laid his hands upon a few sick folk, and healed them.
own
wrought by
his
hands
3 Is not this the carpenter, the son of Mary, the brother of James, and
own
tion
country," at Nazareth.
It
is
a melancholy illustra-
and deserves
special attention.
The men
lived so
of Naza-
at our Lord.
think
it
who had
many
years
among
as
For
and went
and
years
But
it
was
all lost
upon
them.
when
came among them, and taught in their synaThey would not believe that one whose face they knew so well, and who had lived so long, eating, and drinking, and dressing like one of themselves, had any
the Lord
gogue.
right to claim
at
their attention.
Him."
108
There
is
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
nothing in
all
this that
need surprise
us.
The same thing is going on around us every day, in our own land. The holy Scriptures, the preaching of the
Gospel, the public ordinances of religion, the abundant
means
of grace
They
are so accustomed
It
is
know
their privileges.
an
else,
There
for
is
There
is
comfort for
who
are cast
down by
the
There
who
stand alone in
to the
their families,
and see
all
world.
same cup
that
best.
He
too
Him
make
it
Let them
know
that
the
sorrowful words
of
their
Lord
will
" a prophet
coimtry, and
is
not without
his
among
own
kin,
and
in his
"We
of
life
see, in
He
The people
of Nazareth said
Him,
This
is
is
only found in
MARK, CHAP.
first
TT.
109
thirty years of
His
life,
to
There
is
something mar!
vellous
He who
is,
and
sea,
and
all
that therein
He, without whom nothing was made was made, Son God Himself, took on Him the form a
that
of
servant,
working man.
passeth knowledge."
sakes
He became
poor.
Though He was rich, yet for our. Both in life and death He hum-
Him
and
no
sin in poverty.
We
])overty, unless
upon
us.
but
it
is
no disgrace
to
work
own hands, and earn our bread by our own labour. The thought of the carpenter's shop at Nazareth, should cast down the high thoughts of all who
with our
make an
idol of riches.
It cannot be dishonourable to
We see,
sin
how
exceedingly sinful
is
the
of
unbelief.
Two
One
is,
no mighty work"
at Nazareth,
The other is, that "He marvelled The one shows us that unbehef
110
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
other
shows that
it is
and unreasonable a
it
sin,
that
God
regards
with surprise.
our guard against unIt began in
We
belief.
much on
when Eve
"ye
shall die."
It
is
all sins
in its consequences.
It
fills
"He
of
It
is
and inconsistent of
all sins.
It
Kes.
"Worst
all,
it is
on
They
know nothing
and Voltaire.
But
in practice
implicitly
They do not
as their Savioiir.
The
heart,
is
the seat of
mysterious power.
difficulties of
It
neither the
want of evidence,
nor the
make men
They love
unbehevers.
sin.
It
are
is
want
They
wedded
to
the world.
In
this state of
mind they never lack specious reasons to confirm their will. The humble, child-Hke heart is the heart that beheves. Let us go on watching our hearts, even after we have The root of unbelief is never entirely debelieved.
stroyed.
We
have only
to
leave
ofi"
watching and
MARK, CHAP.
VI.
Ill
No
prayer
is
so
disciples,
"Lord,
MARK
7
VI. 713.
11 And whosoever shall not receive you, nor hear you, when ye depart thence, shake off the dust under your feet for a testimony against them. Verily I say unto you, It shall be more tolerable for Sodom and Gomorrha iu the day of judgment, than for that
city.
and began to send them forth by two and two and gave them power over unclean spirits 8 And commanded them that they
should take nothing for their journey, save a staff only no scrip, no bread, no money in their purse 9 But be shod with sandals and not put on two coats. 10 And he said unto them. In what place soever ye enter into an house, there abide tul ye depart from that
;
:
12 And they went out, and preached that men should repent. 13 And they cast out many devils, and anointed with oil many that were
sick,
place.
These
verses describe
the
first
apostles to preach.
The
great
Head
made
in the
He
left
them alone
He taught them to try their own powers of teaching, and to find out their own weaknesses, while He was Thus, on the one hand. He was enabled yet with them.
is a peculiar expression in this passage, which deserves I refer to the words which say, that our Lord " could do mighty work there, because of their unbelief."
There
notice.
no
for our
cannot mean, that it was "impossible" do a mighty work there, and that although He had the will to do mighty works, He was stopped and prevented by a power greater than His own. Such a view would be dishonouring to our Lord, and in fact would be a practical denial of His divinity. With Jesus nothing is impossible. If He had willed to do works, He had the power.
Tliis expression of course
Lord
to
The meaning evidently must be, that our Lord "would" not do any mighty work there, because of the unbelief that He saw. He was prevented by what He perceived was the state of the people's hearts. He would not waste signs and wonders on an unbelieving and hardened generation. He "could not" do a mighty work,
112
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS,
Thus, on the other, they were
themselves. ^Well would
to do,
and were
not novices,
it
when
prepared for their duty in like manner, and did not so often
take up their
office untried,
without departing from His rule, " according to your faith be it unto you." He had the power in His hands, but He did not will
to use
it.
is
of the light it throws on another Scriptural expression, which is often grievously misunderstood. I refer to the expression, "no man can come to me, except the Father which hath sent me draw him." (John vi. 44.) The words, "no man can come," are often much
misapprehended.
The text is a plain declaration of man's natural conniption and helpless impotence. M^n is dead in sin. He cannot come to Christ, In a word, he is unable to come. except the Father draws him. But what is the precise nature of his inability ? Tliis is the veiy
point on which misapprehension exists.
Once for all, let us clearly understand that man's inabihty to come to Christ is not physical. It is utterly untrue to say that a man can have a strong decided will to come to Christ, and yet be stopped by some mysterious physical obstacle, that he can really and honestly have a will to come, and yet have no power. Such a doctrine entirely overthrows man's responsibility, and leads, in many cases, to wicked continuance in sin. Thousands of ignorant people will tell you that "they wish to believe, and wish and yet say that "though to come to Christ, and wish to be saved,"
will,
It is a fatal delu-
The truth is that man's inabihty to come to Christ, and impotence to that which is good, is moral, and not physical. It is not true that he has the will to come to Christ, but is unable. He but it is simply because is unable, doubtless, and has no power he has no will. His will is the principal cause of his unconverted state, and until his will is changed by the Holy Ghost, he will never alter. He may not like this. But it is true. The fault of Say what he pleases, the blame his condition is his own will. He may pretend to have many good wishes, but in lies there. He "will reality he has no honest, sincere will to be better. not come to Christ that he may have life."
;
MARK, CHAP.
VI.
113
and two."
St.
Mark
is
who mentions
this fact.
It
one
this fact is
meant
to teach
company
to
aU who work
for saying,
Two
Two men
They
and
singly.
mistakes.
They
will aid
They
and
up
when tempted
in times of
to
to idleness,
relapse into
and be
down,
"Woe
him
It
is
that
alone
when he
falleth
for
he hath not
iv. 11.)
is
not sufficiently
remembered
m the
The harvest is undoubtedly great all over the world, both The labourers are unquestionably at home and abroad.
few, and the supply of faithful
men
far less
than the
" one by
demand.
The arguments
men
and weighty.
place
is
But
still
a striking
fact.
The
where we
is
find
another remarkable
cumstance.
if
It
is
difficult to
the rule of going forth " two and two " had been more
it
114
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
at all events
is clear,
One thing
all
and that
is
the duty of
iron,
man
his friend."
Ministers
and
missionaries,
and
district visitors,
teachers,
should
make
is
opportunities
meeting, and
of St. Paul
:
The words
forgotten
much
" consider
;
not
24, 25.)
place,
our Lord uses about those who will not receive nor hear
His
ministers.
He
says,
"
it
shall be
more
tolerable for
for
in the
This
is
a truth which
It
we
is
down
it is
in the Gospels.
painful to think
how
entirely
to
overlooked by many.
Thousands appear
sup-
pose,
murder, or
or
cheat,
or openly break
great danger.
They
soul.
They do not
man
to
hear the
to
be invited to
careless
and un-
believing.
to reject the
man
MARK, CHAP.
out asking ourselves, "What are
VI.
115
received
into our
in our hves ?
us,
Have
taken up
If not,
we
to stocks
and
stones.
We
are far
more
Gomorrah.
never rejected
But
as for us,
we
and yet
May we
search our
own
tlie
hearts,
souls
doctrine
what was
We read that
"they
The
necessity of repentance
might be written
rank and
to
show the
the suitableness of
class of
it
to every age
mankind.
It
is
inseparably connected
nature, of sin, of
human
and of heaven.
to a
willingness to give
after pardon.
them
This
up,
and
to
hunger and
be
thirst
All, in a word,
is
need
bom
life.
again and
to flee to Christ.
less
repentance unto
than
Nothing
every one
who
We
116
must bid men
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
repent, if
we would walk in the steps of when they have repented, we must bid
to their last day.
Have we
ourselves repented?
It
is
the
well to
know what
But it is far better know repentance by experience and to feel it inwardly May we never rest till we know and in our own hearts. There are no impenitent feel that we have repented people in the kingdom of heaven. All who enter in there
whole system of Christian doctrine.
to
!
have
sin.
felt,
mourned
over, forsaken,
we hope
to
be
saved.*
MARK
14
(for
VI. 1429.
And king Herod heard of Alwi," his name was spread abroad :)
]
and he said. That John the Baptist was risen from the dead, and therefore niightj^ works do shew forth him. themselves
15 Others said, That it is Elias. others said, That it is a prophet, or as one of the prophets, 16 But when Herod heard thereof,
And
* The concluding verse in this passage, together with one in the Epistle of James. (James v. 14.) is generally quoted by Eoman Catholics, in supjwrt of their pretended sacrament of extreme moment's reflection wUl show that neither this text unction. nor the other refeired to, is any proof at all.
In both cases, the anointing with oil is expressly connected with the healing of those anointed. Extreme unction on the contraiy is an anointing administered to a dying person, when there i no
hope of his recovery.
This discrepancy between the anointing of the apostolic times
and the anointing practised by the Church of Eome, is so glaring, that some of the ablest Romish conti'ovei'sialists have been obliged
to
acknowledge, that " extreme unction " is founded on church and not on the authority of Scripture. Lombardus, Bonaventura, Bellarmine, Jansenius, and Tirinus, are all mentioned by Calovius as being of this opinion.
authority,
MARK, CHAP.
17 For Herod himselfhad sent forth laid hold upon John, and bound in prison for Herodias' sake, his brother Philip's wife for he had
:
VI.
117
and
soever thou shalt ask of me, I will give it thee, unto the half of my
him
married her. 18 For John had said unto Herod, It is not lawful for thee to have thy brother's wife.
19 Therefore Herodias had a quarrel against him, and would have killed him ; but she could not 20 For Herod feared John, knowing that he was a just man and an holy, and observed him and when he heard him, he did many things, and heard
;
kingdom. 24 And she went forth, and eaid unto her mother, WTiat shall I ask ? And she said, The head of John the
Baptist.
'
25 And she came in straightway with haste unto the king, and asked, saying, I will that thou give me by and by in a charger the head of John
the Baptist. 26 And the king was exceeding sorry ; yet for his oath's sake, and for their sakes which sat with him, he would not reject her. 27 And immediately the king sent an executioner, and commanded his head to be brought and he went and beheaded him in the prison, 28 And brought his head in a charger, and gave it to the damsel and the damsel gave it to her mother.
: .
him
gladly.
21 And when a convenient day was come, that Herod on his birthday made a supper to his lords, high captains,
and
22
said Herodias came in, and danced, and pleased Herod and them that sat with him, the king said unto the damsel, Ask of me whatsoever thou wilt, and I will give it thee.
his disciples hedrd of it, they came and took up his corpse, and laid it in a tomb.
29
And when
23
And he
These
Baptist.
verses
describe
tlie
Of
all
tells this
melancholy
Mark.
own
souls.
We A
while he
lives,
Herod " fears " John the Baptist and is troubled about bim after he dies.
a king.
lies
friendless,
conscience.
Here
This
is
the secret of
the reason
why
when Paul
not
left
God has
118
verted people.
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
Fallen and corrupt as
man
is,
there are
he
lives,
thoughts
make even
to
thoughts
and
afraid.
that can
None ought
much
as ministers
and
and teach
is
may
not in vain.
Children
may seem
often far
see.
inattentive
schools.
Hearers
may seem
careless in congregations.
But
more going on
John the
when the
in
sower, like
dead or gone.
We see,
religion,
and
further than
He
many
"feared
He " knew
that he
He
He He even
He
things"
He
And
Let us keep
spare
no-
make
is
no darling
is
lust
murdering
Let us
our souls.
off
Let us not
all
rest
till
we can
Thy command-
119
ments concerning
all
rebuke
sin.
He
was impru-
He He
ungodhness by using
words
consequences,
"
It
is
brother's wife."
Here
is
all
open
sin,
it.
and deliver a
It
faithful
offence.
all
warning
It
to
aU who are
entail
living in
may
immense unpopularity.
this
Duties are
No doubt it requires great grace and courage to do this. No doubt a reprover, like John the Baptist, must go to
work wisely and lovingly
in
in
But it
is
a matter
which
manifestly at stake.
If he believes a
man
him
is
injuring
him
so.
If he loves
him
truly
to let
ruin himself
be, in the
unwarned.
may
"He
that rebuketh a
man, afterwards
shall find
more
120
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
We see,
reprover,
how
keep
their sins.
sin
than Herod.
Hardened
and never
and women
turn them.
When men
to
tries to
and resolved
dislike
They would
position.
They
are angry
The prophet Elijah was called a "man that troubled Israel." The prophet Micaiah was hated by Ahab, "because he never prophesied good of him, but evil." The
prophets and faithful preachers of every age have been
treated in like manner.
as well as not believed.
Let
it
we hear
of faithful
and the
devil,
and
that
It
is
if
no disgrace
no real honour'
a minister to
be
thought well
of
by everybody.
Woe unto
you when
all
men
MARK, CHAP.
VI.
121
sin
We
see, in
the
fifth place,
how much
may
sometimes
his birth-
Herod keeps
up the day.
In a moment of excitement, he
John
he
ofi".
Next day,
in all probability,
was
too late.
This
feasting
and merry-making.
seasons from
deeply jepent.
temptations,
Happy
are
they
who keep
to
of
the
devil
Men
never
do,
to
many
But the
We see,
of God's
how
little
re/war^ some
An
unjust
Like
whom
Histories
to
remind
us,
that
His
122
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
faith
walk by
if
he looks
for
Here, in this
fight,
secution
and
if
But
will
There
is to
be a day of retribution.
There
is
a glorious
for all.
Heaven
make amends
Eye hath not seen, and ear hath not heard the glorious things that God has laid up for all that love Him. The
value of real reHgion
seen,
is
"The
sufferings of this
"Our
light affliction,
which
2 Cor.
is
18
MAKE
30
VI. 3034.
33
selves together unto Jesus, and told hini all things, both what they had done, and what they had taught. 31 And he said unto them, Come ye yourselves apart into a desert place, and rest a while for there were many
:
ing, and many knew him, afoot thither out of all cities,
much
things.
Let
us
mark
in this passage,
tJie
from
We
Jesus,
and
told
Him
all things,
MARK, CHAP.
These words are
bright example to
all
VI.
123
deeply instructive.
They
are
work
of
They should
tell
all their
proceedings to the
all their
great
Head
of the Church.
work
before Christ,
and ask of
Him
of
counsel, guidance,
strength,
and help.
is
Prayer
business.
the
main
secret
success
in
spiritual
It
It
brings
moves Him who can move heaven and earth. down the promised aid of the Holy Ghost,
the finest sermons, the clearest teaching,
It
diligent working, are all alike in vain.
without
whom
who have
closest
who
It is generally
those
who keep up
communion with
It
is
those
who
breath,
they
may
to
live."
(Ezek.
XXX vii.
9.)
It
is
those
who
apostolic model,
prayer and
is
Happy
that
as well
as a preaching
The question we should ask about a new minister, is not merely " Can he preach well ? " but " Does he pray much for his people and his work ? "
Let us mark, in the second place,
the words of our
to
Lord
the apostles,
when
tJiey
returned
from
their first
public miyiistry,
"He
said unto
Our
124
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
flesh as well as
as well as souls.
He knows
vessels,
that
at best they
and are
shows
their
do,
many
infirmities.
He
He
asks for
what we can
ye apart,"
and not
says,
for
what we cannot
full
do.
"Come
He
wisdom.
Our Lord
to their
own
us
He knows
is
that a
constant attention
forget our
to
public
work
apt to
make
own
private soul-business,
we
i.
6.)
He
reminds us that
is
"Come
ye apart,"
He
who
Christ,
and
souls
by excessive
attention to others.
The
vast
and do nothing
around them.
There
much
as the spur.
who need
^Yet these
few ought
gamblers.
daily
it away like They should be content with spending their income of strength, and should not draw recklessly
on
their principal.
that to do a
MARK, CHAP.
little,
-VI.
125
to
and do
it
way
do most in the
long run.
their
Above
own
self-examination,
work
soul.
intimately bound
Occasional retire-
ment
is
Finally,
us
mark
who came
together to
read that
road to ruin.
Jesus Christ.
Lord
He was
to
them.
He
began
"
He
never changes.
High
pities
in
He
still
He
the
stiU
He
is
them many
things."
Special as His
voice.
love
still
is
towards His
He
overlook
this.
It
is
Jesus pities them, and cares for their souls, that Jesus
is
126
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
and
invites
them
to believe
and be
saved.
Let us ask
ourselves, as
we
we know anything
verted ?
of the
mind
Are we
like
Do
we, like Him, feel deep compassion for sheep without a shepherd?
who
care
are yet as
Do we
own
doors?
Do we
Do we
money
willingly,
to spread the
questions and
demand a
It
serious reply.
not like
is
Jesus Christ.
may
own
soul.
MAEK
35
VI. 3546.
hundreds, and by fifties. 41 And when he had taken the five loaves and the two fishes, he looked up to heaven, and blessed, and brake the loaves, and gave them to his disciples to set before them and the two fishes divided he among them all. 42 And they did all eat, and were
;
And when
now
far
said. This is the time is far passed 36 Send them away that they may go into the country round about, and into the villages, and buy themselves bread for they have nothing to eat. 37 He answered and said unto them. Give ye them to eat. And they say unto him. Shall we go and buy two
and
now
filled.
them
38
He
How many
loaves have ye ? go and see. And when they knew, they say. Five, and two
fishes.
twelve baskets fragments, and of the fishes. that did eat of the loaves were about five thousand men. 45 And straightway he constrained his disciples to get into the ship, and to go to the other side before unto Bethsaida, while he sent away the
43
full of the
44
And they
39
make
people.
Of
all
is
so fre-
MARK,
CIL^P. VI.
127
we have
to
now
read.
it.
Each
It
is
was inspired
record
evident that
it
Let us observe,
example
for
this miracle
Lord Jesus
Christ's
almighty power.
We are told
and two
that
He
men, with
five loaves
fishes.
"We are
to eat.
distinctly
had nothing
"We
are
no
And
yet
we read
that our
fishes,
blessed, brake,
His
disciples to
And
"they did
all eat,
and were
filled,"
and
that " twelve baskets full of fragments " were taken up.
Here was
creative power,
beyond
all question.
SomeThere
exist.
is
no room
left for
been
material bread.
Twelve baskets
if
full of
fragments would
In
was present on
first
sent
at the in the
It
becomes
all
128
EXPOSITORY THOLGHTS.
remember them
in time of
need.
"We
us,
live in the
few with
We carry within us
to turn aside
moment
we
What
shall
There
We
only one
answer.
We
must look
to Jesus.
must think on
We
follow
must
call to
His people
who
Him, even
thoughts,
And
as
we think
these
we must remember
is
still lives,
on our
side.
Let us observe,
Christ's conduct,
when
tJie
We read,
that
"when He
to
into a
mountain
pray."
There
stance.
is
man.
After
one of His
we
Him
immediately
He
said,
what
He had
closet,
is
taught elsewhere,
when He
to
in secret."
did.
None
mighty works as
He
None
None
be our example.
MARK, CHAP.
VI.
129
;
as in
He
His
did
in this
He
stands
steps, in the
matter of
private devotion.
we have
to
we
can pray.
done hitherto.
strive to
make
time,
and
place,
and opportunity
let
God.
to
Above
for
aU,
we attempt
is
work
God,
done.
would be well
time do
for us all, if
we examined
ourselves
more frequently
What
we
give to
it
the day ?
What What
progress can
prayers ?
do we
know by
These are
humbling
inquiries,
may
come
do in
Our Master's
all
His
continuing
His
are things
We
live in
and so-called
activity.
Men
is
and abridge
their prayers.
When
this
the
case,
we need not
in proportion
little
Head more
closets.
closely.
The Church must learn to copy its Its members must be more in their
little,"
"We
iv.
have
because
little
is
asked.
(James
2.)
130
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
MARK
47
VI. 47-66.
tlie
ship was in the midst of the sea, and he alone on the land. 48 And he saw them toiling in rowing; for the wind was contrary unto them and about the fourth watch of
:
'
52 For they considered not the miracle of the loaves for their heart was hardened. 53 And when they had passed over, they came into the land of Gennesaret,
:
the night he cometh unto them, walking upon the sea, and would have passed by them. 49 But when they saw him walking upon the sea, they supposed it had been a spirit, and cried out 50 For they all saw him, and were troubled. And immediately he talked with them, and saith unto them. Be of good cheer it is I ; be not afraid, 51 And he went up unto them into the ship and the wind ceased and they were sore amazed in themselves beyond measure, and wondered.
:
and drew to the shore. 54 And when they were come out
of the ship, straightway they
knew
him. 65 And ran through that whole region round about, and began to carry about in beds those that were sick, where they heard he was. 56 And whithersoever he entered,
into villages, or cities, or country,
j
'
they laid the sick in the streets, and besought him that thej- might touch if it were but the border of his garment and as many as touched him were made whole.
:
The
event
first
is
a beautiful
first
emblem
Like the
disciples,
we
are
now
tossed to
and
fro
we
Lord
though
returns.
may
be a
He
Like the
we
changed
to us.
We shall no longer be
by storms.
is
There
There
passage.
manifest in
For the
contain.
Let us
how
sees the
troubles of
His
believing people,
and
MARK, CHAP.
them.
VI.
131
We
read that
when "
of the sea,
and
He
He "saw
His
disciples toiling in
the sea,
be not afraid,"
them walking on rowing," came words, "It cheered them with the the storm a and changed
gracious
is I,
into
calm.
stances, the
sees them.
Alone, or in company,
in sickness or in health,
by
sea or by land,
in the city,
in perils
on the lake,
ever looking
We
is
He knows the path He may not that we take, and is still able to help. come to our aid at the time we like best, but He will never allow us utterly to fail. He that walked upon the water never changes. He will always come at the right time to uphold His people. Though He tarry, let us
Our way
never hid from Him.
wait patiently.
Jesus sees us, and will not forsake us.
Let us
<npl<ts,
when they
sea.
We
and
had been a
nature
spirit,
afraid."
What
if
a faithful picture of
!
human
we have
in
these words
How many
would have
How
^how
to the ship,
altogether
from fears
if
they
132
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
if
they
like,
of the
march of
latter
intellect,
times.
we may
they.
The
boldest sceptics
have sometimes proved the greatest cowards, when appearances have been seen at night, which they could not
explain.
The truth
is,
there
is
an instinctive feeling in
all
There
is
a conscious-
to
conceal by affected
life
in which
man
has a portion.
The common
foolish
and
superstitious.
They
weak-minded
people.
a fact that
deserves notice.
It
is
counterfeit coin
It
is
is
true
money.
infidel
forms
find
it
would
is
hard
to explain
away.
It proves
that there
testifies of
men
feel
it,
they
The
world.
is,
to live
provided
That antidote
is
faith
in an unseen
Saviour,
MARK, CHAP.
VII.
133
Armed
with that
and seeing
Him who
is invisible,
nothing need
make
us afraid.
"We
We
with Jesus
Shepherd,
With Him
Let us
now by many dangers. But we have no cause for alarm. we are safe.
what
to
one another.
We We
and
when
the people
to
region,"
and brought
Him
for ourselves.
Let us go and
may
be healed.
day.
Time
is short.
away.
Let
the knowledge of
It
is
saved.
a comfortable thought,
made whole."
MARK Vn.
1
113.
which came from Jerusalem. 2 And when they saw some of his
disciples eat bread
is to say,
found
fault.
3 For the Pharisees, and all the Jews, except they wash their hands oft, eat not, holding the tradition of the elders. 4 And when they come from the market, except they wash, they eat not. And many other things there be,
134
EXPOSITORY THOrOHTS.
and many other such like thin:9 ye do.
9 And he said unto them, Full well ye reject the commandment of God, that ye may keep your own traditions, 10 For Moses said, Honour thy father and thy mother and. Whoso curseth father or mother, let him die the death 11 But ye say. If a man shall say to his father or mother, It is Corban, that is to say, a gift, by whatsoever thou mightest be profited by me ; A
;
:
\
which they have received to hold, aa the washing of cups, and pots, brasen vessels, and of tables. 5 Then the Pharisees and Scribes asked him. Why walk not thy disciples according to the tradition of the elders, but eat bread with unwashen
hands
6
r
i
unto them,
of
you
This people honoureth me with their lips, but their heart is far from me. 7 Howbeit in vain do they worship me, teaching for doctrines the com-
shall be free.
12 And ye sufifer him no more to do ought for his father or his mother
13
effect
mandments
of
men.
|
of
God
of
none
8 For laying aside the commandment of God, ye hold the tradition of men, as the washing of pots and cups
:
'
through your tradition, which ye have delivered and many such like things do ye.
It
is
one of those
studied by
Christ.
all
who
Church of
The
first
thing,
and degraded
earth.
now
We
find
disciples ate
We
are
and
tables
"
In
short, the
man who
!
paid most
of htmian
rigid attention to
man
The
things
world.
nation, be
existed,
it
remembered, in which
this state of
was the most highly favoured was given the law on Mount
in the
To
it
Sinai, the
service of
MARK,
promises.
phets, lived
CIIAP. VII.
135
its
people.
No
and
nation upon
many
spiritual privileges.
No
nation
privileges so fearfully,
so thoroughly
dim
and
own mercies. Never did fine gold become so From the religion of the books of Deuteronomy
to the religion of
and Psalms,
cups,
pots,
how
without a shepherd.
consciences
alone feed no
and
no
to
with
false doctrine.
If
we once
tolerate
may go, or into what degraded state of reHgion we may at last fall. Once leave the King's highway of truth, and we may end with washwe
never
know how
far
it
There
if
is
a man,
he
of the Church of Christ at this day in which the Scriptures are never read,
now remaining
began
con-
man-made
like the
and
feasts,
branches which
well,
now
and decay.
136
EXPOSITOR-X THOUGHTS.
tiling,
The second
uselessness
that
demands our
attention, is the
of mere
"
lip-service in the
worship of God.
Our
Lord enforces
Testament
crites,
:
this lesson by a quotation from the Old Well hath Esaias prophesied of you hypo-
me
from me."
The
heart
is
the part of
chiefly notices
in religion.
the
regular re-
all
make up
further
heart.
a spiritual worshipper.
The eyes
God
look
My
son,"
of the
" Give
me
thy heart."
this in the public congregation. to take our bodies to
Let us remember
It
Church,
if
we
The eye
patterns of
Pharisees appear at first sight, it is a humbling fact that the Pharisees have never wanted imitators and successors. Zeal about washing pots, and cups, and tables, may seem almost ludicrous, and worthy of none but children but we need not look far to find an exact parallel near home. What can we say to the gravity and sei-iousness with which men argue on behalf of chasubles, albs, tunicles, piscinas, sedilia, credence-tables, rood-screens, and the What can we say to the exaggerated like, in the present day ? attention paid by many to ceremonies, ornaments, gestures, and postures, in the worship of God. about which it is enough to say that Scripture is totally silent ? What is it all but Pharisaism over again? What is it but a melancholy repetition of disproportioned What single argument can zeal about men's traditional usages ? be used in defence of these things that the Pharisees might not have used with equal force ? Eighteen hundred years have passed away, and yet the generation that made so much ado about washing pots, cups, and tables, is stiil amongst us. The succession of the Phai'isees has never ceased.
;
MARK, CHAP.
VII.
137
to he.
Our
voice
may he heard
it is all
But
worse
Him who
dis-
man.
It
Let us remember
must not
our
lips
satisfy us to say
good words,
if
do not go together.
if
What
does
us to
It profits us
God
sees
what we
our ofiering.
hear.
He
loves to
He
will
answer.
may
almost imintelligible,
But
if
God
understands them.
delight.
The
last
man's inventions in
religion
to
this
charge
men."
the
commandments
command-
" Making
ments.
the
ment
of God, that ye
Word
your traditions."
The
was
to
to the Scriptures,
as useful supplelevel
to place
them on a
with
Word
them equal
authority.
The
138
last
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
was
to
to
lawful position.
He was upon
every-
earth.
man were
at all.
thing,
Obedience
Obedience to
a mournful
fact,
walked
The
very same process has taken place over and over again.
resulted.
Religious
observances
to all
appearance
and
at all
These very
We need not
own church
them.*
to
to the
word of God,
as
necessary
to salvation.
It provokes
* The persecution of the Puritans in the time of the Stewarts, on account of canons and rubrics was, in too many cases, neither more nor less than zeal for traditions. An enormous amount of zeal was expended in enforcing conformity to the Church of England, while drunkenness, swearing, and open sin were comObedience to man-made ecclesiastical rules paratively let alone. was required, on pain of fine or imprisonment, while open disobedience to God's ten commandments was overlooked. Experience supplies painful proof, that traditions once called into being are first called useful. Then they become necessary. At last they are too often made idols, and all must bow down to them, or be
punished.
MARK, CHAP.
VII.
139
It
is
God
to
give us
as
we know
of God's
it
better than
It
is
He
does what
necessary for
man's salvation.
word by addition as by
by burying
truth.
The
nothing
Finally, let us
between
man,
is
necessary to salvation.
devises
not.
What man
it.
for
the times;
hinge on obedience to
to
life
eternal.
He
it
ruins his
own
soul.*
* The subtle way in which the Pharisees evaded the requirements of the fifth commandment, to which oiur Lord refers in this j)assage, calls for a few words of explanation. We must remember that the Pharisees did not openly deny the In all probability they obligation of the fifth commandment. professed to attach as much importance to it as any men. And yet
How did they effect this ? they coutrived to make it void They taught that a man might dedicate to God's service, as sacred, any part of his property wliich might be applied to the relief of his parents, and so discharge himself from any furtlier expense about them. He had only to say that all his money was "corban," that is. given over to holy piu7)oses, and no further claim could be made upon him for his father's or mother's support. Under pretence of giving God a prior claim, he set himself free from the burden of maintaining them for ever. He did not flatly deny his duty to minister of his worldly substance to his parents' But he evaded it by setting up a human tradition, necessities. and asserting a higher call of duty, even duty to God. The likeness between the traditions and sophistries of the Pharisees, making void God's word under a pretended zeal for God's glory, and those of the Jesuits, and other advocates of the Roman
!
140
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
MAEK
VII. 1423.
14 And when he had called all the people unto him, he said unto them, Hearken unto me every one of you, and understand
15 There is nothing from without a man, that entering into him can defile him but the things which come out of him, those are they that defile the man. 16 If any man have ears to hear, let him bear. 17 And when he was entered into the house from the people, his disciples asked him concerning the parable. 18 And he saith unto them, Are ye
:
'
from without entereth into the man, it cannot defile him 19 Because it entereth not into his heart, but into the belly, and goeth out into the draught, purging all meats 20 And he said, That which cometh
.>
out of the man, that defileth the man. 21 For from within, out of the heart of men, proceed evil thoughts, adulteries, fornications, murders, 22 Thefts, covetousness, wickedness, deceit, lasciviousness, an evil eye, blasphemj-, pride, foolishness these evil things come from 23
AU
man.
We
how slow of
understanding
men
"Hearken,"
one of
me
every-
so without under-
standing?" "
perceive ?
He
says to His
disciples,
"Do
ye not
Catholic Church, is painfully striking. The following passage from an old commentator is worth reading " The Scriptures teach that there is no difference to he put between meats, in regard of holiness, hut that every creatui-e of God is good. This the Papists make void by teaching that it is matter of religion and conscience to abstain from flesh meats at The Scripture teacheth that we should pray to ceilain seasons. God alone. This they make void by their manifold prayers to The Scripture teacheth Christ alone to be our saints departed. mediator, both of redemption and intercession. This they make void by making saints intercessors. The Scripture teacheth Christ This they abrogate by their to be the only head of the chm'ch. The Scripture teacheth that doctiine of the Pope's supremacy. every soul should be subject to the higher power. This they abrogate by exempting the Pope and popish clergy from subjection Lastly, to instance to the civil power of princes and magistrates. in the same kind as our Saviour here against the Pharisees, whereas the word of God commands children to honour their parents, the Papists teach that if the child have vowed a monastical life, he is exempted from duty to parents." Fetter on St. Mark.
MARK, CHAP.
VII.
141
The
ease.
corruption of
human
nature
is
an universal
will,
dis-
and con-
science,
The
who
is
truths of Christianit}'.
He
He
will see
no
meaning
They
will
He
will listen to
them
like
catching a word here and there, but not seeing the drift
of the whole.
(1 Cor.
i.
21.)
we would make
divine things.
way.
we read and
hear.
is
the
grand secret of
Happy
is
me
Such an one
and impurity
washing,
touching things
"There
is
eating
entering into
him can
him
come out
man."
14S
There
is
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
a deep truth in these
"w^ords
which
is
frequently
incli-
overlooked.
Our
original sinfulness
and natural
The
wickedness of
men
is
often attributed to
bad examples,
It
seems
forgotten
that
every
man
carries
within
him a fountain of wickedness. We need no bad company to teach us, and no devil to tempt us, in order
run into
sin.
to
We
We
tion of children.
In
all
our
all
management we must
mischief and wickedness
It
is
They
carry within
is
for
any
sin,
and
safe,
whatever
we
to
do.
When
all
children do wrong,
lay
mere
ignorance,
and foolishness
do
so.
Bad companions
to be avoided as
and an
evil
much
as possible.
girl half as
much
sin as their
own
in.
by the
The beginning of
all
wickedness
is
with-
If parents
them
far
me
MARK, CHAP.
VII.
143
this passage,
We
see,
from
human
heart contains.
an
eye, blasphemy,
pride, foolishness
all
these evil
things
Let us
speaking of the
He
is
He
is
speaking of
mankind.
learned,
all
of us have
here describes.
lie
The
all.
They may lie dormant all our hves. They may be kept down by the fear of consequences,
hid within us
the restraint of public opinion,
the
discovery,
all,
him the root of every sin. How humble we ought to be, when we read
!
verses
"
We
Unquestionably there are many evils in " public schools," however carefully conducted. It must needs be so. We must expect it. But it is no less true that there are great dangers in private education, and dangers in their kind quite as formidable as any which beset a boy at jiublic school. Of course no universal rule can be laid down. Regard must be had to individual character and temperament. But to suppose, as some seem to do, that boys educated at public schools must turn out ill, and boys educated at
heart.
well, is surely not wise. It is forgetting oiu: doctrine, that the heart is the principal source of evil. Without a change of heart a boy may be kept at home, and yet learn all manner of sin.
144
sight.
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
(Isai. Ixiv. 6.)
He
all
less evils,
for
He
reads
liable,
our hearts.
sins to
which we are
self-righteousness
coming.
How
thankful
we ought
!
to
when we
The blood of Christ can "cleanse us from all sin." The Holy Ghost can change even our sinful hearts, and keep them clean, when changed. The man that does not glory in the Gospel, can surely know little of the plague that
is
within him.
How
watchful
!
we ought
to be,
these verses
What
a careful guard
haviour
At
of our heart's
and
let
temptation."
MARK
24
Vn. 2430.
27 But Jesus said unto her, Let the children first be filled for it is not meet to take the children's bread, and to cast it unto the dogs. 28 And she answered and said unto him, Yes, Lord yet the dogs under the table eat of the children's crumbs.
: :
And from
went
into the borders of Tyre and Sidon, and entered into an house, and
it
:
but he
25 For a certain woman, whose Toung daughter had an unclean spirit, lieard of him, and came and fell at
his feet
26 The woman was a Greek, a Syrophenician by nation and she besought him that he would cast forth the devil out of her daughter.
;
29 And he said unto her, For this saying go thy way ; the devil is gone out of thv daughter. 30 And when she was come to her house, she found the devil gone out, and her daughter laid upon the bed.
MARK, CHAP.
Vtl.
145
is
here mentioned,
we here read. Her name, her way in which she was led to seek
all
But
woman
are
learn wisdom.
In the
to
first place,
otJiers.
this
passage
is
to
encourage us
to
pray for
our Lord,
in the history
now
in deep affliction.
an unclean
spirit.
which
death
itself.
Him
to
She prays
who
her prayer
granted.
By
cure which no
human means
could obtain.
is
Through the
healed.
;
On
her
own
vain.
but her
mother spoke
a praying
always hope.
The truth here taught is one of deep importance. The case here recorded is one that does not stand alone. Few duties are so strongly recommended by Scriptural
example, as the duty of intercessory prayer.
There
is
146
benefits that
EXPOSITOR'S THOUGHTS.
may
them.
rion's servant,
Capernaum,
the centu-
examples.
"Wonderful as
for souls,
do great things
moved
to
a righteous
man
availeth
much." (James
v. 16.)
woman.
They cannot
life
new
hearts.
Christian education,
them a
God.
and a mind
;
to love
Yet
there
is
they
con-
who
will
run
who
set
their affections
Such prayers
let
will
down
blessings.
Never, never
prayers
us forget
whom many
have been
In the second
persevere
in
is
meant
to teach tis to
praying for
history
we
are
now
reading, appeared at
obtain
On
the contrary,
She prayed
on,
MARK, CHAP.
She pressed her
would take no
suit
VII.
147 She
refusal.
She pleaded
all.
for a
few "crumbs"
And
go thy
She heard
last
these
is
"For
this saying
way
the devil
Our
to think that it is
no use
down,
to
draw near
to
God.
Our
faint.
and our
knees
wax
and
up.
filling
These
It
is
ought to
It
and then
left off.
"We
no immediate answer
for
to
our prayers.
pray,
"We
on
whose
souls
we
going
it is
in
sin.
intercession to
come
to
an end.
to
In order
for per-
woman.
faint, in
last
she went
home
rejoicing,
and
Do we know what
it is to
This,
The man
soul,
is
who never speaks to God about his own know nothing of praying for others. He
can
yet
as
148
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
call
upon God.
But do we pray
that
for ourselves ?
Then
let
us take heed
selfish
we pray
Let us beware of
prayers,
^prayers
own
affairs,
no place
all
for all,
the
for
them year
eyes
after year,
in
of their continued
God's time of mercy may be a distant one. may not see an answer to our intercessions. The answer may not come for ten, fifteen, or twenty years. It may not come tiU we have exchanged prayer
unbelief.
Our
for praise,
and are
far
away from
this world.
But while
to
we
ness
we can do
to
any one,
to speak for
him
our Lord
Jesus Christ.
of the
The day
of judgment will
greatest links
in drawing
some
God,
MARK
31
VII. 3137.
sighed, and saith unto him, Ephphatha, that is. Be opened. 35 And straightway his ears were opened, and the string of his tongue was loosed, and he spake plain.
again, departing from the coasts of Tyre and Sidon, he came unto the sea of Galilee, through the midst of the coasts of Decapolis.
And
32 And they bring unto him one that was deaf, and had an impediment in his speech and they beseech him
;
to put his
33 And he took him aside from the multitude, and put his fingers into his ears, and he spit, and touched his tongue; 34 And looking up to heaven, he
36 And he charged them that they should tell no man but the more he charged them, so much the more a great deal they published it; 37 And were bevond measure astonished, sapng, He hath done all things well he matketh both the deaf to hear,
:
to speak.
MARK, CHAP.
VII.
149
The
is
demands our
is
here recorded.
We read
had an impediment
that
in
Lord "one that was deaf and his speech," and besought h^m
He
At once
the
petition is granted,
wrought.
to the
Speech
man by
We
It
is
we
only regard
as
something
more than
We
must look
further,
fijid
deeper,
and
in the passage
to see
He
hearing ear.
He
we
Here
also
are
meant
power
to
He
upon God.
He
can put a
new song
in the
mouth
of
world.
things,
He
and
can
him whose talk was once only of this make the vilest of men speak of spiritual
Gospel of the grace of God.
is
testify the
When
ble.
impossi-
regard our
He
cases
in-
dumb
still lives.
The
150
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
notice in these
manner
in which our
Lord thought
good
to
work
when
dumb
and he
**He took him aside from the multitude, and put his
fingers into his ears,
spit
and touched
his tongue
and looking up
not
till
to heaven,
he sighed,"
then,
be opened."
There
actions.
is
undoubtedly
We know not
to our
and
command
here did.
recorded.
as
He
His reasons
He
We
is
only
know
;
on other occasions
cured.
But there
That lesson
is,
that
means
in doing
fit
Sometimes
He
thought
to
work
His enemies
He
still
employed certain
He
We see the same thing going on Christ. We see continual proof that
grace to the soul.
Church of
is
the Lord
not
Sometimes
He He
is
pleased to work
by
sometimes by the
word
read
privately.
Sometimes
awakens people by
employs means of
sickness
and
affliction,
counsel
of friends.
Sometimes
He
MARK, CHAP.
race to turn people out of the
VII.
151
of sin.
way
Sometimes
He
He
will not
made an
idol
and exalted,
will not
to the
of other means.
as useless,
He
and valuable.
hands of
AU
Him who
He
is
heals.
in these verses,
They
!
said these
words were
sensible of their
applied to Christ.
themselves." (John
51.)
full
to
which
and unspeakable
all
remembered by
true
Let us remember
past of our lives,
it
as
we
things well."
In
first
bringing
in humbling
folly,
^in
portions,
in placing us
where we
have,
How great
152
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
it as we look forward to the days yet know not what they may be, bright or dark, many or few. But we know that we are in the hands of Him who "doeth aJl things well." He will
Let US remember
to come.
We
He
will take
away and give, He wiU afflict and bereave, He will move and He will settle, with perfect wisdom, at the right time, in the right way. The great Shepherd of the sheep makes no mistakes. He leads every lamb of His flock by the right way to the city of habitation. "We shall never see the full beauty of these words till the
resurrection morning.
lives,
from
to last.
We
remember
that
all all
the
way by
which we were
done."
led,
and
confess
was "well
now
perplexes,
wiU be
clear
and plaia
We shall wonder
at
we could ever have doubted our Lord's love. " Now we see through a glass darkly, but then face to face. Now we know in part, but then shall we know even as we are known." *
(1 Cor. xiii. 13.)
* The reason why our I^ord made use of the previous actions recorded in this miracle, spitting, looking up to heaven, and sighing, is a question that has often perjjlexed commentators. Some observations of Luther, quoted by Stier, are worth reading
" This sigh was not tongue and ear of this tongues and ears, yea all men from Adam to
single sigh over all all hearts, bodies, and souls, and over his last descendant."
poor over
man
but
it is
common
" Our beloved Lord saw well what an amount of suffering and sorrow woxild be occasioned by tongues and ears. For the greatest
MARK, CHAP.
VIII.
153
MARK
1
VIII. 113.
In those days the multitude being very great, and having nothing to eat, Jesus called his disciples unto him, and saith unto them, 2 I have compassion on the multitude, because they have now been with me three days, and have nothing
to eat
a few small fishes blessed, and commanded to set them also before them,. 7
and he
8 So they did eat, and were filled and they took up of the broken meat that was left seven baskets. 9 And they that had eaten were about four thousand and he sent
:
And
if I
them away.
10 And straightway he entered into a ship with his disciples, and came into the parts of Dalmanutha. 11 And the Pharisees came forth, and began to (question with him, seeking of him a sign from heaven, tempt-
to their
own houses, they will faint way for divers of them came
:
And his disciples answered him, From whence can a man satisfy these men with bread here in the wilderness } 5 And he asked them. How many loaves have ye } And they said. Seven. 6 And he commanded the people to sit down on the ground and he took the seven loaves, and gave thanks, and brake, and gave to his disciples to set before them ; and they did set them before the people.
:
ing him.
12
And he
and
Why
unto you. There shall no sign be given unto this generation. 13 And he left them, and entering into the ship again departed to the
other side.
Once more we
see our
irmltitude
fishes.
He knew the
heart of man.
He
who would
question the
He
per-
formed.
By repeating
mouth
He He
stops the
of all
who
evidence.
Let us observe in
how great
is
the kindness
and compassion of our Lord Jesus Christ. He saw around Him a " very great multitude," who had nothing
to eat.
He knew
mischief which has been inflicted on Christianity, has not arisen from tyrants, (with persecution, murder, and pride against the word,) but from that little bit of flesh which abides between the jaws. Tliis it is that inflicts the greatest injury upon the kingdom of God."
154
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS,
Him
idle curiosity,
and had
no claim whatever
be regarded as His
disciples.
Yet
when He saw them hungry and destitute, He pitied them " I have compassion on the multitude, because they have now been with me three days, and have
:
nothing to eat."
The
in
these words.
He
who
are
the
He feels tenderly for them, though they know it not. He died for them, though they care little for what He did on the cross. He would receive them
graciously,
freely, if
He
ing people.
But He has
even
for the
knowledge." (Ephes.
19.)
Let us
strive to
as in everything else.
ate,
and
pitiful,
men.
Let us be
ready to do good to
to friends
and
them
This
is to
This
is
the
right
to
way
to
heap coals of
20.)
place,
from
this passage,
impossible.
The
disciples said,
4
iLA.RK,
CHAP.
VIII.
155
" from whence can a man satisfy these men with bread here in the wilderness ? " They might well say so. Without the hand of
Him who
first
made the world out of But in the almighty and a few fishes were made
Nothing
is
thousand men.
too
hard
We must never
wants of
all
His people.
He
has
" bread enough and to spare" for every soul that trusts in
Him.
Weak,
there
is
infirm, corrupt,
empty
as believers feel
themselves, let
them never
In
Him
up
to be bestowed on all
who
ask in prayer.
all fulness
His people.
He knows
their cir-
He
is
acquainted with
He
for
will
really
their
His heart
is
He
down on
hand of
God.
He
still
lives
the hungry
How
much
those
fail.
more,
may we
trust
He
who
Him ? He
may
will supply
them without
Their faith
occasionally be tried.
They may
But
**
left
entirely destitute.
Bread
him
156
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
last place, hoio
We are told
He
seeking of
Him
!
men were
bringing on
own
souls.
Enemies
The
feeling
pressed,- will
true Christians.
is
converted, will
always regard the unconverted with pity and concern. This was the mind of David " I beheld the transgres:
sors,
cxix.
158.)
This was
:
"
They
vexed
"
He
deeds" of those
around him.
(2
Peter
ii.
8.)
Paul
"I have
my
brethren." (Rom.
something of the
feels,
so feel the
we see mind of Christ. As the great Head members. They all grieve when they
be. 2.)
In
all
these cases
see sin.
self-inquiry.
Do
we know anything of likeness to Christ, and fellow-feeling with Him ? Do we feel hurt, and pained, and sorrowful, when we see men continuing in sin and unbelief ? Do
MARK, CHAP.
VIII.
157
state of the
we
feel grieved
un-
converted ?
demand
serious consideration.
and
sin are
Lord now,
Let us
as they
strive
and
may
The
one which
many commit
He
imchanged.
Can we doubt
that
when He
sees
is
some
He
grieved ?
From
such sin
may we
be delivered
MARK
Vrn. 1421.
your heart yet hardened
18
.'
14 Now the disciples had forgotten to take bread, neither had they in the
Bhip with them more than one loaf. 15 And he charged them, saying, Take heed, beware of the leaven of the Pharisees, and of the leaven of
Having
and
having
Herod.
16
And
we have
no bread.
Jesus knew it, he saith unto them, Why reason ye, because ye have no bread ? perceive ye not yet, neither understand ? have ye 17
And when
ears, hear ye not ? and do ye not remember ? 19 When I brake the five loaves among five thousand, how many baskets full of fragments took ye up ? They say unto him. Twelve. 20 And when the seven among four thousand, how many baskets full of fragments took ye up ? And they said, Seven. 21 And he said unto them. How is it that ye do not understand }
Let
His
He
says,
ISS
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
are not left to conjecture
We
St.
warning.
This
is
made
clear
by the
Matthew's Gospel.
mean the leaven of " bread," but the leaven of "doctrine." The self- righteousness and formalism of the Pharisees,
the worldliness and scepticism of the courtiers of Herod,
Against both
He
would be
remembered.
The
assaults of persecution
so
from without
Church, as
much harm
to the
more mis-
The sword
The
doctrines
those which
to
inflict
most
Formalism on the
Church of
Christ.
In every age
to
The
Lord
in speaking of false
doctrine
it
singularly forcible
and appropriate.
He
calls
"leaven."
ployed.
doctrine,
the
way
in which
it
insensibly
MARK, CHAP.
pervades a man's religion,
it
VIII.
159
witli whicli
Here,
it
ap-
proached us under
its its
true colours,
success
would do
harm.
The
great secret of
is its
subtlety
and likeness
to truth.
Every
a truth abused.
Let us no more
trifle
it
trifle
with a
little
than we would
lie.
with a
into our
immorality or a Httle
Once admit
far
it
hearts,
astray.
is
may
lead us
The beginning
out of waters,
first
a drop, and at
last
a torrent.
(Gal. V. 9.)
Let us notice
They
speaking of doctrine.
reproof:
He spoke must be the never struck them that He was They drew from Him the sharp
yet,
?
"Perceive ye not
neither
understand?
that ye do as
How
is it
"
Believers,
converted,
renewed,
still
dull of apprehension in
still
kingdom
"We
is
remember what
help to correct
It
may
we
to
160
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
as soon as
we
is
are converted.
Our knowledge,
like aU.
our graces,
at our
There
is
more ignorance
" If any
we
of.
man
all,
Above
we
remember what
is
We We must
false
him down
as graceless
he
and
His heart
may
be right in the
and
he
may
be very
We
aside.
patiently,
and not
cast
him
and knowledge,
like
and blameworthy
is,
He
goes on teaching
Let us do
Let
it
we
MARK
22 And he cometh and they bring a blind
to
VIII. 2226.
;
I
and besought him to touch him. 23 And he took the blind man by
MARK, CHAP.
the hand, and led him out of the town and when he had spit on his eyes, and put his hands upon him, he asked him if he saw ought. 24 And he looked up, and said, I ee men as trees, walking. 25 After that he put Aw hands again
VIII.
161
upon his eyes, and made him look up and he was restored, and saw every
man
clearly.
26 And he sent him away to his house, sajdng. Neither go into the town, nor tell it to any in the town.
We
do not
know
in
working the
"We
see a blind
man
miraculously healed.
We
know
that a
a cure.
blind
man
by the hand,
eyes,
till
spitting
on his
^leading
^putting
And
the
meaning of aU these
entirely unexplained.
But
means,
it is
Lord
is
there are
diversities of operation,
converts.
was
all
In
is
a sovereign.
He giveth
not account of
One
vation.
That thing
is
man.
He
did
He
it
in a
moment, but
He
said
chose to do
step
by
step.
man
162
that he only
his eyesight
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
as trees -walking."
Afterwards
man clearly."
alone.
this
meant
to
"We may be
work
of our
other places,
we
of
manner
in
which
the
Spirit
We
are
all
Conversion
light,
is
an illumination, a change
to
from darkness to
from blindness
seeing the
kingdom of God.
distinctly at first.
practices,
Yet few converted people see things The nature and proportion of doctrines,
They
man
before us,
is
who
at first
saw men
as trees walking.
Their vision
new
not
their
all
work
proper
This
is
all clearly.
and
is
men as trees walking, they end Happy is he who has learned himible and distrustful of his own
judgment.
Finally, let us see in the gradual cure of this blind
MARK, CHAP.
man, a
VIII.
163
come.
We
see in part
and know
in part in the
present dispensation.
night.
We
by
is
We
know
much
that
God
many
of God's
we
see
much
In
that
cannot
alter.
short,
as trees walking."
let us look forward and take comfort. The time when shall all "clearly." The night comes we see is far The day is at hand. Let us be content to wait, spent.
But
When
be perfected.
We shall see
been known.
as
we have been
seen,
MARK
ciples, into the
:
VIII. 2733.
that the Son of man must suffer many things, and be rejected of the elders, and o/'the Chief Priests, and Scribes, and be killed, and .fter three days rise again. 32 And he spake that saying openly. And Peter took him, and oegan to re-
27 And Jesus went out, and his distowns of Csesarea Philippi and by the way he asked his disciples, saying unto them,
Whom
do
28
am
Baptist: but some say, Elias; and One of the prophets. 29 And he saith unto them. But whom say ye that I am ? And Peter answereth and saith unto him, Thou art the Christ. 30 And he charged them that they flhould tell no man of him. 31 And he began to teach them,
others.
buke him. 33 But when he had turned about and looked on his disciples, he rebuked Peter, saving. Get thee behind me, Satan for thou savourest not the
:
portance.
are
of great im-
164
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
Happy
are those
not wasted on
trill es,
but
Let us observe
the
Christ,
Some
said that
he
Baptist,
some
Elias,
and
others one of
to
We
may
see the
side
at the
little
present day.
many
ago.
Many know
who came
the
name
Him
and
one
life
as one
Few
He
is
very God,
Mediator,
and peace,
the
their
own
Friend.
Vague
still
very common.
Instill
with Christ
is
very rare.
May we
is
never rest
till
we can
His."
say of Christ,
(Cant.
ii.
"
My
beloved
is
mine and I
am
16.)
This
saving knowledge.
This
is life
eternal.
Let us observe
"
Whom say ye
it
that I
He replied to our Lord's question, am ? " " Thou art the Christ."
It
under which
was
wealth,
power.
It
'
MARK, CHAP.
heads of
tlie
VIII.
165
in church
and
state,
Simon Peter
faith
says,
estate.
None
of these things
moved Simon
Peter.
He
believed that
He whom
He
declared
it
few companions
is
There
much
that
we may
faith
profitably learn
from
he sometimes was,
the
in
he exhibited in the
passage
now
before us
is
Such
bold confessions as
faith,
his, are
and
are
required
every age,
disciples.
if
men
too
will
We
must
be ready
to confess Christ,
We shall We
side,
must be prepared
walk
to confess
xis.
But
in Peter's steps,
and we
who
confess
as
Him
before men,
and
will
them
Lord
makes of His own coming death and resurrection. read that " He began to teach them, that the Son of
We
man
must
suffer
many
things,
elders,
166
and
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
of the chief priests,
and
scribes,
and be
killed,
and
The
to the disciples.
after all
To be
ment
" He
miist suffer,
He must be
killed,
He must
Did
rise again."
Why
He
was unable
that
Did
He mean
to the
He must
example
world of
self-sacrifice
and
self-denial,
and
be replied, " Impossible." There is a far deeper meaning in the word " must " suffer and be
Once more
it
may
killed.
He meant
that His
necessary in order to
make atonement
man's
sin.
Without the
sacrifice of
cross, there
He
" must
iniquity.
He "must" die,
suffer, becaiise
He "must"
In a word.
He "must" be
Here
Let us never
forget that.
MARK, CHAP.
secondary importance.
Vlll.
167
of re-
we have
to
so
His
and so
be the
In
life
and in
by that
suffering purchased
Him.
Finally,
let
the strange
may
he
found
in
"We
who had
to
He
spoke of
suffering
and d)dng.
We
see
Him
lips
Satan
We have here
is
poor
fallible
Here
was ignorance in
Simon
His
Peter.
He
on
the
cross.
Here
was
self-conceit
in
Simon
and
Peter.
He
and
actually imdertook
excellent way.
And
last,
but not
168
did
it
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
all
with the
best
intentions!
He meant
well.
But
zeal
facts
here recorded.
spirit-
by the
praise of others.
Let
are not
We
see that
making a good
way.
confession to being a
daily,
"Satan" in
Christ's
Let us pray
^let
"Hold thou me
up,
^keep
me
not err."
here recorded.
to cast off
may
call to
be right in the
for
a time turn
aside.
Rather
it.
let
us
mind
St.
Paul's
" If a
man
be overtaken in a
such an one in the
ye which are
spiritual, restore
spirit of
meekness
(Gal.
tempted."
vi. 1.)
MASK
34
also,
VIII. 3438.
if
called the
him with his disciples he said unto them, Whosoever wiU come after me, let him deny himself, and take up Ms cross, and follow me. 35 For whosoever will save his life shall lose it but whosoever shall lose his life for my sake and the Gospel's, the same shall save it. 36 For what shall it profit a man,
people unto
;
lose his
own
soul
37 Or what shall a
change for his soul } 38 Whosoever therefore shall be ashamed of me and of my words in this adulterous and sinful generation of him also shall the Son of man be ashamed, when he cometh in the glory of his Father with the holy angels.
MARK, CHAP.
VIII.
169
this passage are
The
to
as to the
truths of the
Church.
the absolute
we
and
be saved. after
What
let
saith our
Lord ?
himself,
"Whosoever
and take up
will
come
cross,
me,
him deny
his
Salvation
undoubtedly
all
of grace.
It
is
offered
freely in the
"By
man
grace
;
are ye
it is
saved
the gift of
God
ii.
8, 9.)
But
all
who
must
to enter
heaven without
conflict
on earth.
They must
the
and the
They
the body, to fight daily with the devil, to come out from
the world, and to lose their Hves,
if needful, for Christ's
These
we
admit of no evasion.
The words
If
and unmistakeable.
shall never
we
170
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
froin Christ's service
by
fear of
Heavy
it.
as that cross
may
all
us grace to bear
"I can do
it
Thousands and
before us,
light.
No
good
We
we
can enter
The
cross
by the
is for
way
is
but
for
a few years.
The
evermore.
anything
Does
it
entail
any
it
sacrifice ?
it
Has
any
Does
carry with
cross ?
If
not,
we may
We
that
to
have everything
is
to learn.
worth nothing.
is.
It will do us
now
It will
lead to
no salvation in the
life
come.
We
"What
meant
from these
verses,
the
What
if
saith our
Lord?
whole
man
he
"
own
soul ?
up
to exertion
and
They
when we
lie
rise
down.
May
and never
effaced
all
by the
souls
it
devil
We
have
that
for
evermore.
Whether we know
or not,
live
we
all
MARK, CHAP.
VIII.
171
which we
an awful
dermg
shall
In the grave.
We
have
all
souls, for
have
to give
account to
God.
It
is
thought,
when we
consider
how
little
attention most
men
it
But
it is true.
lose his
own
soul.
He
cannot save
it, it,
But he can
lose
and that
many
different ways.
He may
lies,
murder
hy loving
it
sin
and cleaving
to the world.
He
may
poison
by
choosing a
superstitions.
rehgion of
He may
starve
by neglecting
all
means
of grace,
and refusing
are the
Many
a man Weak,
Whatever way
it.
takes, he,
accountable for
human
nature
is,
man
own soul. The whole world cannot make up to a man the loss of The possession of all the treasures that the his soul.
world contains, would not compensate for eternal ruin.
satisfy us,
few years,
evermore.
Of aU unmake, the
man
cart
worst
is
who
have repented,
repented too
mess of pottage,
like
many, unhappily,
Esau, have
late.
Let these sayings of our Lord sink deep into our hearts.
Words are inadequate to express their importance. May we remember them in the hour of temptation, when the
172
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
and unimportant
thing,
May
we remember them
are tried
when we
this
by the
fear
In hours
mind
it
to ourselves,
"What
man
if
lose his
own
soul ?
"
the great
What
saith
our
Lord ?
"Whosoever
Son of
shall
be ashamed of
me and
of
my
words in
this adulterous
and
sinful generation, of
him
Man
be ashamed
when He cometh
is
When
can
it
ashamed ashamed
com-
of Christ ?
We
are
the doctrines
we
of Christ,
to
be reckoned
people of Christ.
and
The man
who
from
is
sure to bring
on himself
and persecution.
from fear of
Christ,
Whosoever shrinks
and perse-
this confession
is
this ridicule
cution,
ashamed of
this.
"The
fear of
man"
does
There are
MARK, CHAP.
would not dare
to
IX.
173
"Wonderful indeed
is
the power of
Marvellous
men
live
Let us
all
Of
sin,
or worldliness, or unbelief,
we may
well be
ashamed.
to
be
ashamed of
Him who
In
spite
of laughter, mockery,
let
us boldly
to
avow
that
we
serve Christ.
He
confess
in the
MARK
IX. 113.
loved Son hear him. 8 And suddenly, when they had looked round about, they saw no man any more, save Jesus only ^vith them:
1 And he said unto them, Verily I say unto you, That there be some of them that stand here, which shall not taste of death, till they have seen the kingdom of God come with power. 2 And after six days Jesus taketh vsit/i him Peter, and James, and John, and leadeth them up into an high mountain apart by themselves and he was transfigured before them. 3 And liis raiment became shining, exceeding white as snow so as no fuller on earth can white them. 4 And there appeared unto them Elias with Moses and they were talking with Jesus. 5 And Peter answered and said to Jesus, Master, it is good for us to be here and let us make three tabernacles one for thee, and one for Moses, and one for Elias. 6 For he wist not what to say for they were sore a&aid. 7 And there was a cloud that overshadowed them and a voice came out f thi cloud, saying, This is my be: ;
:
selves.
9 And as they came down from the mountain, he charged them that they should tell no man what things they
had seen, till the Son of man was risen from the dead.
10 And they kept that saying with themselves, questioning one with another what the rising from the dead should mean. 11 And they asked him, saying. Why say the Scribes that Elias must
first
come
12 And he answered and told them, Elias verily cometh first, and restoreth all things and how it is written of the
;
Son of man, that he must sufler many things, and be set at nought. 13 But I say unto you. That Elias is indeed come, and they have done
it is
listed, as
174
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
connection of this passage witli the end of the last
The
of
His
saved.
But
in the
same breath
glory.
futiire
kingdom and
of of
in the history of
here recorded,
we
see that
promise
fulfilled.
first
The
ham
at
His second
this
was one
It
of the princi-
was meant
to
teach the disciples, that though their Lord was lowly and
He
was
meant
to teach
them, that
when
their
It
was meant
to
and be partakers of
* The analogy between tlie glory assumed by our Lord at His transfiguration, and the glory which the saints shall receive at His resurrection, is well pointed out by Victor Antiochenus in a
passage quoted by Du Veil. He says, "We must not suppose that there is to be any change of the natural foi-ra of man in the kingdom of heaven. For as the appearance of Christ was not in
MARK, CHAP.
IX.
176
this vision.
We have reason
cross
to
"We are
up
We
Year
find our
and
all
we
believe
we
see our
comfeel
we
we knew little about them, except gone to an unknown world, and that we
as if
No
faith of believers
sometimes languishes,
The
vision of the
holy
mount
is
in
His
saints
shall
that
We
life
may
wait patiently.
"When
ye also
Christ,
who
is
our
appear with
Him
in glory."
4.)
notice in this
he saw his
Lord
to
"Master," he
said,
"it
is
good for us
be here."
No
much
in this saying,
which cannot
be commended.
itself
changed, but only illumined, (or glorified) so, also, the just conformed tx) His glorious body, will not be changed Their bodies will only receive a certain as to their outward form. accession of splendour and light, which St. Paul calls a change, (1 Cor. XV. 52.) but the evangelists, a transfiguration."
who
will be
176
for
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
to suffer
and
to die.
It
showed a forgetMness of
Above
to
made
at the
same time
and
all, the proposal which he " build three tabernacles " for
Moses, Elias,
Christ,
know
all
that
In
these
not to be praised,
but
to
be blamed.
said this, let us not fail to
But having
remark what
warm-hearted disciple.* Let us see in his fervent cry, " It is good to be here," what comfort and consolation
the sight of glory can give to a true believer.
Let us
which the
when they
shall at last
to
at
A vision
stir
was
sufficient
warm and
was
Peter's heart.
The
sight of
two
saints
in glory
fain
What
then shall
we
say,
when we
saints?
Lord appear
shall
at the last
What
we
say,
when we
are
* The remark of Brentius on the glorious nature of the whole vision of the transfiguration is well worth quotuag. Like most of that admirable commentator's expositions, it contains much in few
words.
this.
"No Synod on earth was ever more gloriously attended than No assembly was ever more illustrious, here is God the
Here
are
Peter, James,
God the Son, and God the Holy Ghost. and Elias, the chief of the prophets. Here are John, the chief of the apostles."
Father,
Moses and
MARK, CHAP.
IX.
177
and
feel that
Lord
we
shall go out
man
can answer.
The happiness of that great day of gathering together is one that we cannot now conceive. The feelings of which Peter had a little foretaste, wiU then he our's in full experience. We shall all say with one heart and one voice, when we
see Christ
and
all
His
saints,
"It
is
good
to
he here."
in
this
The
passage
offi>ce
last
thing which
demands our
it
notice
is the distinct
testimony which
hears to Christ's
and
dignity, as the
first
promised Messiah.
We see this
Elias,
testimony
in the appearance of
Moses and
They
would
is
He of whom
they spoke
whom
He
come.
They disappear
after a
Him
^We
see this
myheloved Son
hear Him."
The same
voice of
God
On
"this
my
beloved Son."
On
was an
"Hear
to
Him."
The whole
ciples.
was calculated
them
in the
most
striking
manner,
prophets,
J.78
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
is
all
words that should be ever before the minds of all true Christians. They should " Jiear Christ." He is the
great Teacher
;
Him.
Church
He
:
is
Him.
He
is
the
Head
of
the
Him.
Church
The grand
says,
quessays,
or ministers
councils say,
What says Christ ? Him let us hear. In Him let us abide. On Him let us lean. To Him let He and He only will never fail us, never disus look.
^but
say,
what
the
what
Happy
are they
who know
sheep hear
my
my
voice,
me
and they
shall
man
my
hand."
John
x. 27, 28.)
* The coming of Elias, or Elijah, which forms the topic of conversation between our Lord and His disciples in the latter part of the passage now expounded, is a deep and mysterious subject.
1. According to one class of interpreters, the ministry of John the Baptist was the coming of Elias. They consider that the prophecy of Malachi, (Mai. iv. 5, 6) thatElijah the prophet should be sent before the great and dreadful day of the Lord, was completely accomplished in John the Baptist, and that no other coming of Elias is to be This is the view maintained by the great majority of expected. Protestant Commentators, both English and Foreign, from the time of the Keformation to the present day.
2.
literal
coming of
MARK, CHAP.
IX.
179
MARK
14
IX. 1429.
to his dis-
ciples,
he saw a great multitude about them, and the Scribes questioning with them.
15
22 And ofttimes it hath cast him into the fire, and into the waters, to destroy him but if thou canst do any thing, have compassion on us, and
:
And
when
amazed, and running to him saluted him. 16 And he asked the Scribes, What question ve with them ? 17 And one of the multitude answered and said. Master, I have brought unto thee my son, which hath a dumb spirit; 18 And wheresoever he taketh him, he tcareth him and he foameth, and gnasheth with his teeth, and pineth away and I spake to thy disciples that thev should cast him out ; and they could not. 19 He answereth him, and saith, faithless generation, how long shall 1 be with you ? how long shall I suffer you ? bring him unto me. 20 And they brought him unto him and when he saw him, straightway the spirit tare him and he fell on the ground, and wallowed foaming. 21 And he asked his father. How long is it ago since this came unto him And he said, Of a child.
:
:
help us. 23 Jesus said unto him, If thou canst believe, all things are possible to him
that belie veth.
24 And straightway the father of the child cried out, and said with tears, Lord, I believe help thou mine un;
belief.
25
When
came running
the foul spirit, saying unto him. Thou dumb and deaf spirit, I charge thee, come out of him, and enter no more into him. 26 And the spirit cried, and rent him sore, and came out of him and he was as one dead; insomuch that
:
many
and
said.
He
is
dead.
;
him by the hand, him up and he arose. 28 And when he was come into the house, his disciples asked him privately. Why could not we cast him out ?
27 But Jesus took
lifted
29 Aiad he said unto them. This kind can come forth by nothing, but by prayer and fasting.
.*
The
the
very striking.
We pass from
the vision
mount
We come
down from
Elias is yet to take place. They consider that John the Baptist only went hefore our Lord in the "spirit and power of Elias," (Luke i. 17.) and that the words of Malachi are yet to he fulfilled. This is the view maintained by nearly all the Fathers, by the gi-eat majority of the Roman Catholic Commentators, and by not a few modem Protestant divines both English and continental at the present time.
If I
differ so widely, I
must express an opinion, when great and learned divines must honestly confess that I decidedly incline to
the second of the two interpretations above given. I believe that a literal appearing of Elijah the prophet before the secord coming of Christ may be expected. Dark and incomprehensible as the subject is, the scriptural arguments in favour of this view appear to
180
of glory,
to
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
a conflict with Satanic possession.
We
We
leave the
God
God
distress,
and a
band of
by Satan's power,
and imable
is
to give relief.
The
is
contrast,
we must
all feel,
very great.
Yet
it
when He
first laid
it is
aside
And
after all
Master, work,
row
will always
be the
With them
too, visions of
glory,
Let us
learji
from these
verses,
how dependent
Christ^
disciples are
me
unanswerable.
Any
meaning of the words of Malachi iv. 5, 6 Matt. xvii. 1 1 John i. 21. There seems no reason why there should not be a double "coming of Elias," the first, "inspirit and power," when John the Baptist preached, the second, "literal and in person," when He shall come at the end of the world, immediately before the great and dreadful day of the Lord.
plain
The whole question is undoubtedly smrounded with difficulties, whatever view we adopt. I can only say that after patient and calm investigation, I see much fewer difficulties in the way of the interpretation to which I lean, than in the way of the other. I hold with Augustine, Jerome, Chrysostom, Hilary, Jansenius, Brenius, Greswell, Alford, and Stier, that Malachi iv. 5, 6, is not yet completely fulfilled, and that Elijah the prophet will yet come Those who can read Greek wUl find an interesting note on this subject, in Cramers Catena on St. Mark.
MARK, CHAP.
IX.
181
"We
manner
in
when He came down from the mount. Like Moses, when he came down from Mount Sinai, he finds his Httle flock in confusion.
the scene which meets our Lord's eyes,
He
sees
Scribes,
and
baffled in
an attempt
to heal
devil.
The very
same
disciples
who
many
by
ye
many
them.
devils,"
for
They were
5.)
humbHng
me
can do nothing."
(John xv.
It
was a
useful lesson,
would
The
for-
we
But we may be
sure
it
was a
time.
We do not
we can do nothing
without Christ.
see
many
illustrations of this
The
failed
men who
at one time
cause of the
entirely,
as water.
The
are
temporary recantations of
striking examples.
Cranmer
and
Jewell
The
of.
holiest
His strength
He
to
He
has only
to leave
him
is
for a season,
and he
power
is
gone.
as
Like Samson,
when
his hair
was shorn, he
weak
182
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
failure of
Let us
day our
Him we
may
do
all things.
"Without
Him we
can do nothing
at aU.
tations.
"With
may overcome
us.
Let
We know
isence
may
bring forth,
^if
thy pre-
go not with us
we cannot go up."
place,
we are
liable to be
injured by Satan.
We
is
here recorded.
this
And we
There
awful
visi-
came
to him,
"of a
child.'*
we
to
do good to our
If Satan begins
from their
so early to do
in diligence to lead
them harm, we must not be behind him them to God. How soon in Hfe a
and accountable,
is
difficult
question to solve.
suppose.
One
it is
never
and pray
of children,
beings,
never
tell
them
and
as moral
and
them
of God,
and
Christ,
right,
and
wrong.
The
devil,
we may be
young people.
Let us work
filled
He
begins with
to
of a child."
hard
counteract him.
also be filled
MARK, CHAP.
Let us
learn,
IX.
18^
from these
verses,
We see in those
many
among
fear,
a true Christian.
believers, in
are to be found
Nothing
perfect in a
in the body.
all
His knowless
and
love,
more or
de-
with his
faith.
him a remainder
of unbelief.
What
Weak,
use
it.
shall
we do with
wait
our faith ?
it
We
may
must
be,
^lse it.
we must
and
account,
We must not
till it is
great, perfect,
it to
man
it
will be
more
strong.
" Lord,"
" I believe."
shall
What
it,
we do with our
it.
unbelief ?
We must
allow
it
resist
to
keep
to Christ, as
we
for
Him
dehverance.
we must
are they
is
cry,
Happy
who
know something
them.
of them.
The world
man.
ignorant of
are all
fears,
But
let
184
them.
It
is
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
of the utmost importance to our comfort to
may
by
his
inward peace.
the complete dominion
all his agents.
is
last place,
The
spirit
who was
at once
cast out
thority,
by the Master.
of him,
He
and Satan
thee,
come out
into
him."
We
us.
is
may
is
Greater
He that
is
for us
all
Satan
But Jesus
by Him,
from
from the
Satan
will
fiery
devil, as well as
in patience.
Jesus
lives,
and
Jesus
lives,
and
The
great chain
is
prepared.
(Rev. XX.
1.)
The God
MARK
30
IX. 30-37.
they shall kill him and after that he he shall rise the third day. 32 But they understood not that saying, and were afraid to ask him. 33 And he came to Capernaum and being in the house he asked them,
;
And they
passed through Galilee and he would not that any man should know it. 31 For he taught his disciples, and
said unto them. The Son of man is delivered into the hands of men, and
is killed,
* The expression, " greatly amazed," in the fifteenth verse of the passage now expounded, deserves some notice. The Greek word
MARK, CHAP.
What was it that ye disputed among yourselves by the way ? 34 But they held their peace for by the way they had disputed among themselves, whosAow/rfJethe greatest. 35 And he sat down, and called the twelve, and saith unto them, If any man desire to be first, the same shall be last of all, and servant of all.
:
IX.
185
And he took a child, and set him them and when he had taken him in his arms, he said
36
in the midst of
:
unto them, 37 Whosoever shall receive one of such children in my name, receiveth me and whosoever shall receive me, receiveth not me, but him that sent
:
j
me.
Let
nouncement of His own coming, death, and resurrection. " He taught his disciples, and said unto them. The Son
of
man
is
shall kill
him
and
after that
he
is killed,
he
shall rise
The
ap-
sweet
saying,
as well as hitter,
life
as
weU
it
as
death,
all
the
still
But
was
darkness
to ask."
full of their
earth.
They thought
as
immediately to appear.
stand,
Never are we
when
prejudice and
pre-conceived opinions
is
exceedingly strong, and implies a feeling much beyond that which the English word " amazed " conveys to our minds. It certainly seems as if some traces of visible glory, or, at any rate, some expression of extraordinary majesty appeared in our Lord's countenance, after the transfiguration. It reminds us of the face of Moses shining when he came down from the mount.
186
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
whicli
ment
He
makes.
It
is
He
He must He
He would
for
have us
know
came
be
which
He
how God
work
could
and yet
justify sinners.
He
for
did not
come upon
miracles.
He came
this.
to
make
satisfaction
cross.
sin,
by His own
of Christ
object
which
demands our
try, is
themselves
who should
How
Who
desire of
Who
strife
would have expected that poor men, who had given up would have been troubled by
and
Yet
so it
is.
The
fact is recorded
it
The Holy
it is
to be
written
down
Church.
an awful
is
fact,
whether we
that pride
human
nature.
thicJi:
We
are
all
bom
Pharisees.
We
all
naturally
than we ought.
MARK, CHAP.
IX.
ISt
We all
we
sin.
than we have.
of Eden,
It is
an old
It is a subtle sin.
many
prevents repentance,
checks
is
It
is
a most soul-
anxiety.
Let us watch
is
Of
all
garments, none
so graceful,
and none
sets before
His
disciples.
first,
He
man
desire to be
all."
the
same
and servant of
instructive.
They show us
is to rule,
maxims
mind
of Christ.
The
The world's
but the
to
receive
honour and
attention,
and
to attend
on himself.
In
short, the
man who
man
most
men, and
to be useful in his
day and
generation,
is
the greatest
Let us
strive to
make
searching maxim.
*
Let us seek
The words
says,
He
"
so that he
office is a name of labour rather than of honour coveteth preeminence rather than usefukiess may understand that he is not a bishop." De Giiiit. Dei.
Bishop's
who
188
men, and
to
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
to mortify that self-pleasing
all so
and self-indulgence,
any service that
Is there
which we are
prone.
Is there
we can render
kindness that
any
we can do them,
If there
is,
their happiness ?
us do
if
without delay.
Well would
it
be for Christendom,
empty boasts of
and
this passage
less frequent,
words in
more common.
aU,
few.
and servants of
always
reality,
Lord
gives us to
skew kindness
to the least
and
lowest
who
believe in
His name.
touching manner.
in a very
arms, and
children in
my
Him
The
down
is
a continuation of that
It
is
one which
is fool-
man.
other
way
to
greatness than
The Son
of
God
way
lies
He enforces
He
teUs us that to
to receive Christ,
and
God."
MARK, CHAP.
There
is
ricli
IX.
189
for all wlio devote
encouragement here
There
is
encouragement
for every
one
who
to
whom
from a
no
man cares
life
and
to
Let
all
these words.
Their work
may
often be
They may be mocked, ridiculed, and held up to scorn by the world. But let them know that the Son of God marks all they do, and is well Whatever the world may think, these are they pleased.
hard and discouraging.
whom
MAEK
IX. 38-50.
i
38 And John answered him, saving, Master, we saw one casting out devils in thy name, and he foUoweth not us and we forbad him, because he foUoweth not us. 39 But Jesus said. Forbid him not for there is no man which shall do a miracle in my name, that can lightly speak evil of" me. 40 For he that is not against us is on our part. 41 For whosoever shall give you a cup of water to drink in my name, because ye belong to Christ, verUv I say unto you, he shall not lose his reward. 42 And whosoever shall offend one
it is better for
shall be
the
quenched 44 Where their worm dieth not, and fire is not quenched. 45 And if thy foot offend thee, cut
:
it is better for thee to enter it off halt into life, than having two feet to be cast into hell, into the fire that
:
'
'
never shall be quenched 46 Where their worm dieth not, and the fire is not quenched. 47 And if thine eye offend thee, pluck it out it is better for thee to enter into the kingdom of God with one eye, than having two eyes to be
:
worm
dieth not,
of these little ones that believe in me, him that a mUlstone were hanged about his neck, and he were cast into the sea. 43 And if thy hand offend thee, cut it off it is better for thee to enter into
:
and the fire is not quenched. 49 For every one shall be salted with fire, and every sacrifice shall be salted with salt. 60 Salt is good but if the salt have lost his saltness, wherewith will ye
:
season
it
Have
salt in yourselves,
life
that never
j
We
mind of Christ on
the great
19^
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
The
apostle
John
said to
Thy
He was
work
beyond question.
in the
not
He
did not
company
of the
He
And
now
said,
therefore
But
let
!
us hear
Church decides
no
" Jesus
him not
is
man which
shall do
miracle in
my name
For he that
on our part."
Here
is
human
Men
of
done by their
so
own
They
are
narrow-
minded, that they cannot conceive the possibility of working on any other pattern but that which they follow.
They make an
like
idol of their
own pecuKar
ecclesiastical
They
are
him who
the
cried
in
camp,
"My
when Eldad and Medad prophesied lord Moses forbid them." (Num.
3d. 28.)
To
we owe some
of the blackest
They have
practically proclaimed
to their brethren,
"you
work
MARK, CHAP.
IX.
191
this feeling.
It
is
our hearts.
Let us study
for
and check
others,
We
may
points.
Christ, if they
and
if all
worked
in the
same
way.
We
may
if
many
evils
arising
from reHgious
dissensions and
divisions.
But
all this
us rejoicing
This
the
grand question.
Happy is he who knows something of the spirit of Moses, when he said, "Would God that aU the Lord's people were prophets " and of Paul, when he says, " If Christ
;
is
xi.
29
Phil.
i.
18.
* The remarks of Quesnel on this passage are interesting, and doubly so when we remember that the writer was a Eoman Catholic. He says, " That which John here does, is an example of an indiscreet zeal for the interests of Christ. The most holy persons have sometimes occasion to secure themselves from secret emulations. We very easily mingle our own interests with those of God and our vanity uses the gloiy of His name only as a veil. A preacher sometimes imagines that his only desire is, that men should follow Christ, and adhere to His word and it is himself whom he desires they should follow, and to whom he is veiy glad
;
to find
them adhere."
"Christ suffers many things in His Church, which are done without His mission; but He makes them contribute to the
i92
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
see, for
"We
m and
the salvation
of our souk. The "hand" and the "foot" are to be cut oflF, and the " eye " to be plucked out, if they offend, or are
occasions of falling.
foot, or
The
if
they
may
cost us.
This
is
first sight.
But our
of
it is
Compliance with
the sure
way
to heU.
Our
many
good.
The
and the
foot are
right direction.
lead us into
sin.
to
make a
practical use of
Howprecise-
ever
men may
lusts."
and
and
than incur peril of sinning against God. Let us walk in Job's steps He says, " I made a covenant with mine eyes."
:
(Job xxxi.
1.)
He
says,
"I keep
fear that
establishment of His kingdom. Whatever reason we may liave to some persons will not persevere in goodness, we must notwithstanding suffer them to continue their endeavours, when they appear to be any ways useful. God Himself authorizes such persons, since it is He who performs the good in them."
MARK, CHAP.
under
IX.
193
my
it
by
to others, I myself
in these verses,
the reality,
and
Three times
Three times
"worm
fire is
Three times
He men He says
that "the
not quenched."
They
con-
and remembered by
little
professing
Christians.
It matters
and emblematic.
very
clear.
is
the
fire
emblems of
is
real
things.
There
is
eternal.
There
ject of hell. to
it is,
it
ought
be pressed on
tianity.
Our
frequently of
it.
The
scribes
The
servants of
God
in these days
it.
must not
there
Were
topic.
no boundless mercy
Him,
we might
sin,
the
awful
Were
away
all
we might well keep silence about the wrath to come. But there is mercy for all who ask in Christ's name. There
is
all sin.
Let us then boldly and una heU, and beseech be too late. " Knowing the
is
fire, let
men
to flee
from
it,
before
it
us "per-
194
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
v. 11.)
It
it
is
is
much
aboutChrist.
But
we
"Have
salt in yourselves,
we have
Holy
to
and
sin, lest
we be
overtaken in
faults,
bring
Above
all let
not
Christ in
attending
to
them
The
is
last verse
I allude of coui-se to the words, to baffle all the commentators. "Every one shall be salted with fire, and every sacrifice shall be
The true meaning of these words and their salted with salt." connexion with the context, are problems which seem not yet solved. At all events, not one of the many interpretations which have been hitherto proposed is entu'ely satisfactory. We must confess that it is one of those knots which are yet untied in the exposition, of
Scrip tm-e.
speaking only of the wicked and " every lost soul shall be salted with the fire of hell, even as every sacrifice under the law of Moses is salted with salt." This appeai-s to be the view held by Whitby.
1.
is
2.
Some think
is
and
by which they
preserved from con-uption, and that He means, " every true disciple of mine shall be as it were salted and passed through the fire of tribulation, even as every sacrifice is salted with salt." Of those who think that our Lord speaks only of the righteous, some think
are purified
and
MARK, CHAP.
X.
195
MAEK
arose from thence, and Cometh into the coasts of Judaea, by the farther side of Jordan and the people resort unto him again ; and, as he was wont, he taught them again.
1
:
X. 112.
female. 7 For this cause shall a man leave his father and mother, and cleave to his wife; 8 And they twain shall be one flesh so then they are no more twain, but
And he
2 And the Pharisees came to him, and asked him, Is it lawful for a man to put away his wife ? tempting him. 3 And he answered and said unto
one 9
flesh.
them, Wliat did Moses command you ? 4 And thev said, Moses suiFered to \*Tite a bill of divorcement, and to put her away. 5 ^Vnd Jesus answered and said unto them. For the hardness of your heart he wrote you this precept. 6 But from the beginning of the creation God made them male and
What therefore God hath joined together, let not man put asunder. 10 And in the house his disciples asked him again of the same matter. 11 And he saith imto them. Whosoever shall put away his wife, and marry another, committeth adultery against her. 12 And if a woman shall put away her husband, and be married to another, she committeth adultery.
The
opening verse of
tliis
perseverance of our
Lord Jesus
We
that the "fire" means not ti-ibulation, and some the woi-k of the Holy Spii'it. Cartwright holds the last of these opinions, Junius the first.
3.
Some think
all
speaking of
that His
that in the first clause of the vei-se, our Lord is membei-s of His church, both good and bad, and
is the same as that of St. Paul, where He says try every man's work of what sort it is." (1 Cor. iii. The second clause, they think, describes the preserving effect 13.) According to this view, of grace on the hearts of true believers. " every one shall be finally the meaning of the verse would be, salted, tried, and tested by the fire of the last day; and every one who has offered himself as a living sacrifice to God, shall be salted
meaning
"The
fire shall
The
and make no comment on any of the above views. objections which might be made against every one of them Whether these objections are insuperare neither few nor small. able or not, is a point on which learned theologians differ widely, and a conclusion will perhaps never be attained until the Lord My own conviction is, that we must wait for more light appears. and regard the text at present as one of the "deep things" of God'
I offer no opinion
196
are told that
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
He came
:
resort unto
Him
again
and
as
He was
He
do good to
souls.
He
In
we never read
said, that
Of Him
all
it
may
be truly
"sowed beside
sowed His
He He
seed,
He knew
His hearers
He
knew, as
He
spoke,
was in
vain.
He knew
who
all
He
laboured on.
try
Let us
to do
it
may
be.
Let
^by
and by every
Let
all
by every
such
who has
remember
done.
Christ's example,
to give
and resolve
to do likewise.
We
we
see
no
We
are to
work on
steadily, keepis
our's
and
MARK, CHAP.
as well as reapers
X.
197
The honest
his land.
grow on
all
Our Master
in
His servants at
that success
is
He knows
He knows
to the fruits
He
will
It
is
whom He
will
(Matt*
XXV. 21.)
The
is
meant
to
show
Jews upon
low in the
age
tie
when our Lord was upon earth, were lax and extreme. The binding character of the marriDivorce for slight and
trivial
*Some remarks
reading.
They occur
of Bishop Latimer on this point are well worth in a passage in one of his sermons on the
parable of the wedding garment. He says, "the man who had not the wedding garment was blamed because he professed one thing, and was indeed auotlier. Why did not the king blacie the preachers ? There was no fault in them, they did their duties they had no further commandment but to call men to the maiTiage. The garment he should have provided himself. Therefore he quarrelleth not with the preachers, What doth this fellow here ? why suffered For their commission extended no fuilher but ye him to enter ? only to call him. Many are gi'ieved that there is so little fruit of their preaching. And when they are asked, 'Why do you not ? preach, having so great gifts given you of God 'I would preach, say they, but I see so little fruit, so little amendment of lite, that it maketh me weaiy:' a naughty answer: a very naughty answer. Thou art troubled with that which God gave "thee no charge of: and leavest undone that which thou art chai'ged with." Latimer'a
: ' '
'
Works.
Parker
Society.
Vol. I. p. 286.
198
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
The
duties of hus-
understood.
To
correct
standard of principles.
He
man and
as
one woman.
He
Adam
:
and Eve,
words of perpetual
significance,
"a man
shall leave
his father
to his wife
and they
"What
He
And
God hath
not
man
put asunder."
finally,
by re-marriage, except
a breach of the seventh
commandment, f
*The extent to which the Jews allowed divorce for ahsurd and frivolous causes, would be almost incredible, if we had not the evidence of their own Rabbinical writings on the subject. full account of the matter will be found in Lightfoot's Horse Hebraicse on St. Matthew v. 31. One passage quoted by him will be sufficient to give the reader an idea of Jewish customs about divorce " The school of Hillel saith, If the wife cooks her husband's food ill by over-salting it, or over-roasting it, she is to be put away."
f I am aware that the opinions I have expressed at the close of this paragraph are contrary to that of some learned divines. I can only say that I have arrived at them deliberately, after calm investigation of the parallel passage in Matt. xix. 9, and of the words of our Lord in Matt. v. 32. I decidedly believe that the re-
is
and frivolous causes, and that His words do not apply to re-marriage after divorce on account of unfaithfulness. Re-marriage after divorce for frivolous causes is clearly adultery, for one the divorce never ought to have taken place, and simple reason
;
a married person in the sight of God. by the same process of reasoning, is not adultery. Unfaithfulness dissolves the mamage tie altogether, and place the husband and wife once more in the position of unmarried people, or of a widower or widow.
the divorced party
is still
Re-marriage
MARK, CHAP.
X.
199
The importance
an exposition of
the
social
system of
nations.
The
public morality
of
a people,
and the
marriage.
The experience
manner.
In
short, the
who
Of
all relations
of
life,
none
and and
wife.
In no relation
it
is
so
much
is
earthly happiness
to be found, if
be entered upon
discreetly, ad\dsedly,
In none
so
much
misery
lightly,
life
seen to follow,
^From
no step in
much
benefit
come
or
to the soul, if
people marry
in the Lord."
From none
much
harm,
any mere worldly motive is Solomon was the only cause which produce the union.
if fancy, passion,
women
200
There
is,
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
unliappily, only too
much
It
is
upon people.
a mournful fact,
life
much
Few
are the
to their
wedding
It
is
much in the world. People find out too late, that they have made a mistake, and go in bitterHappy are they, who in the matter ness all their days.
of which there
is so
The
first is to
marry
God's appro-
The
second
to
is
much
is,
The
third rule
to strive first
for
one
another's sanctification.
are, the
that
He
might
sanctify it." *
(Eph.
* There is an expression in this passage which claims special observation. The Pharisees told our Lord, that " Moses suffered The answer to write a bill of divorcement, and to put her away." He says, ''For the hardness of of our Lord is very remarkable. your hearts he wrote you this precept." And He then goes on to show that this permission to divorce was a proof that their forefathers had fallen below the original standard of mamage, and were dealt with as being in a weak and diseased state of soul. For He says, " But from the beginning of the creation God made them male and female."
The expression throws much light on some portions of the civil law of Moses. It shows us that it was an institution which in some of its requirements was specially adapted to the state of mind in which the Israelites were, on first leaving the land of Egypt. It was not intended in all its minute particulars to be a code of perpetual obligation. It was meant to lead on to something better and higher, when the people were able to bear it. The possession
MARK, CHAP.
X.
201
MARK
X. 1316.
the kingdom of God. 15 Verily I say unto you, Whosoever shall not receive the kingdom of God as a little child, he shall not enter
is
13 And they brought young children to him, that he should touch them and his disciples rebuked those that brought I hem. 14 But when Jesus saw it, he was much displeased, and said unto them, Suffer the little children to come unto me, and forbid them not ; for of such
:
therein.
16 And he took them up in his arms, put his hands upon them, and
blessed them.
The
is
deeply
interesting.
We
see
to Christ,
" that
He should
when Jesus
saw
this
He
was "
much
displeased,"
disciples in
finally
And
we
He
of
light on the position of God's people in world of sin. It shows us thbt there may be things tolerated and permitted by God, both in churches and stated, not because they are the best things, but because they are the things best suited to the chirrch or state in which they are found. It is vain to expect perfection in any government, or in any church. If we have the essentials of justice in the one, and of tinxth in the other, we may be content. God tolerated many things in the government of Israel, until the time of reformation. Siu'ely we may tolerate many things too. To spend oiu- lives in searching after an imaginary state of perfection, either civil or ecclesiastical, is at best a waste of time. God was pleased to suffer some tilings in Israel " for the hardness of their hearts," we may well endure some things in churches and states which we do not quite like. There is a balance of evil in every position in the world. There ai"e imperlections every where. The state of perfection is yet to come.
this
202
Let us
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
learn, for one thing,
firom this passage,
how
mu^h
tJie
should receive
of the
from
Al-
Church of
Church
found
of
children.
He
boys and
girls
of small importance.
He had room
in His
mighty heart
even
for
them.
He declared by
And
is
not
least,
He
has
left
" Of such
the kingdom of
may be
Their characters
during their
seven years.
sin.
They
young
to
to learn evil
and
They
young
their souls,
come,
and
far
aware.
They
are far
more ready
to respond to appeals
conscience.
God has
mercifully not
soul
which
heaven or in heU.
We cannot
to
bounden duty
make
MARK, CHAP.
spiritual training of its children.
X.
203
girls
of
affectionfill
our
places
when we
are dead.
confidently expect
Christ's blessing
on
all
No
which neglects
itself
lazily excuses
on the
it
young people
will
be young,"
and that
is
useless to try to do
it
them good.
Such a
up
people,
whose
home
or running
The members
may
soundness of their
own
views.
children's hearts,
them some
and
day
if
He
thinks
to learn that
Christ regards
them
that Christians
who
Let us
from
this passage,
how
any
much encouragement
baptized.
bring young
children to he
is
Of course
to it in the
All
we mean
a
It
204
is
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
this
on
The
and
see
is
undoubtedly a delicate
are unable to
difficult one.
aKke upon
it.
and
profess to be led
different conclusions
The
is
great
Scrip-
and
right.
many eminent
melancholy
among
its
scriptural
and wrong.
The
difference is a
But the
members
difference
now
referred to,
of the
children
is
in
any wise
To
this opinion
we need
allowed on
all sides
that infants
my
be elect and
ia Christ's
chosen of
blood,
may be washed
bom
sanctified,
is
hard to see
why
they
may
sign of baptism.
It
is
by virtue of
What
else
can
we make
vii.
"now
If this be so,
it
MARK, CHAP.
is difficult
X.
205
to
understand
why an
infant
may
not receive
The
those
who
and
"We read
ia the
New
Testa-
jailer of Philippi
difficult to
and "
all his
" were
baptized.
very
16.)
The
one.
directly
Lord Jesus Christ HimseK never commanded infants to be baptized is not a weighty The church of the Jews, to which He came, had
objection that our
by the
sign of circumcision.
The very
goes far to
prove that
He
* In considering the arguments in favour of infant baptism, there They are extraare two facts which ought to be duly pondered. scriptural facts, and I have therefore purposely omitted them in the Expository Thoughts on this passage. But tbey are weighty facts, and may help some minds in coming to a conclusion.
1. One fact is the testimony of history to the almost universal practice of infant baptism in the eai'ly church. The proof of this is to be found in Wall's History of Infant Baptism. If infant baptism is so entirely opposed to the mind of Christ, as some say that it is, it is at least a curious circumstance, that the early church should have been so ignorant on the subject.
2. The other fact is the notorious practice of baptizing the infant children of proselytes in the Jewish Church. The proof of this is
to be found in Lightfoot's Horse Hebraicae on St. Matthew iii. 6. says, for instance, "The Anabaptists object, 'it is not commanded to baptize infants, therefore they are not to be baptized.' To whom I answer, 'it is not forbidden to baptize infants, therefore they are to be baptized.' And the reason is plain. For when
He
206
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
subject
The
may
be safely
left here.
Few controversies
has so
On none
much
On
to
and agree
The baptism that it concerns us all to know, is not so much the baptism of water as the baptism of the Holy Ghost. Thousands are washed in baptismal waters, who are never renewed by the Spirit. Have we been bom Have we received the Holy Spirit, and been again? made new creatures in Jesus Christ ? If not, it matters little when, and where, and how we have been baptized we are yet in our sins. "Without a new birth there can be no salvation. May we never rest till we know and
;
feel that
we have
of
life,
and are
indeed
bom
God!
Paedobaptism in the Jewish Church was so known, usual and fi-equent in the admission of proselytes, there was no need to strengthen it with any precept, when baptism passed into an evangelical sacrament. For Christ took baptism into His own hands, and into evangelical use as He found it this only added that He might promote it to a worthier end, and larger use. The whole nation knew well enough that little children used to be baptized there was no need of a precept for that which had ever,
;
:
by common
"
use, prevailed."
the other hand, there was need of a plain and open proliibition, that infants and little children should not be baptized, if our Saviour would not have had them baptized. For since it was most common, in all ages foregoing that, little children should be baptized, if Christ had minded to abolish the custom He would have openly forbidden it. Therefore His silence and the silence of Scripture confiims Psedobaptism, and continues it unto all ages." Vol. xi. p. 59. Pitman's edition. Lightfoot's Works.
On
MARK, CHAP.
X.
207
MARK
X. 1727.
17 And when he was gone forth into the way, there came one running, and kneeled to him, and asked him, Good Master, what shall I do that I may
inherit eternal life ? 18 And Jesus said unto him, callest thou me good ? there is none good but one, that is, God. 19 Thou knowest the commandments. Do not commit adultery. Do
for
he had
Why
not
kill.
Do
not
steal.
Do
not bear
and saith ujato his disciples. hardljr shall they that have riches enter into the kingdom of God 24 And the disciples were astonished at his words. But Jesus answereth again, and saith unto them, Children, how hard is it for them that trust in riches to enter into the kingdom of
How
Defraud not, Honour thy father and mother. 20 And he answered and said unto him. Master, all these have I observed from my youth. 21 Then Jesus beholding him loved him, and said unto him. One thing thou lackest go thy way, sell whatsoever thou hast, and give to the poor, and thou shalt have treasure in heaven and come, take up the cross, and follow me. 22 And he was sad at that saying,
false witness,
: :
God
25 It is easier for a camel to go through the eye of a needle, than for
a rich man to enter into the kingdom of God. 26 And they were astonished out of measure, saying among themselves, Who then can be saved } 27 And Jesus looking upon them
saith,
not with
With men it is impossible, but God for with God all things
:
are possible.
The
story
is
New
is
Testament.
Matthew, Mark,
all
inspired
by one
There
same simple
facts.
It
is
in-
Church of
Christ.
We
and kneeled
" what shall I
first
who " came running" to. our Lord, him and asked " the solemn question, do that I may inherit eternal life ? " At
was much that was promising
in this
sight there
case.
man's
He showed
him were
to
and
indifferent.
He
showed a
disposition
by
208
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
Him.
Yet
all
this
time
this
man was
profoundly
ignorant of his
own heart. He hears our Lord recite those commandments which make up our dut}^ to our neighbour,
and
at once declares,
my
its
youth."
actions,
utterly unacquainted.
The
unhappily
most common.
own
sinfulness
and
God.
They
flatter
themselves
"They
much
forget
stolen, or
committed adultery,
surely be in
They cannot
^They
They
how
They never
chapter of
fifth
it
it
Matthew, or
at
with a thick
to themselves.
self- righteous-
The
ness.
wrapped up in
17.)
Self-satisfied
they
live,
and
self-satisfied too
Let us beware of
think that
nothing.
for the
this state of
mind.
So long as we
we can keep
Let us pray
Let us ask
Holy
show us our
MARK, CHAP.
X.
209
and
so to
own
hearts, to
show us God's
holiness,
is
show us
Happy
but
when
the
commandment
Ignorance
vii. 9.)
found together.
He
commandments,
he has found
Christ.
Let us
from
this passage,
This
is
a truth which
is
sion used
in his account of this " man's story, he says, that Jesus beholding him, loved
St.
by
Mark, when
him."
compassion.
Him
fall,
presented.
He
by the
it
wanted
and
sensible that
relief,
sunk in darkness
and blinded
Just as
we
and
shattered,
and
unfit for
man's
use, yet
it
showing many
a mark of the
reared at
first,
skill
with which
so
may we
this
man's
soul.
We
must never
and com-
souls of the
ungodly.
Without con-
He
feels
Him.
They
p
210
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
the Father, and watched with a special care.
Him by
They
Him
in an
everlasting
Him
as part of Himself.
But the
heart of Jesus
is
a wide heart.
He
has abundance of
for those
pity, compassion,
who
still
unbelieving Jerusalem
the
He who same. He
wept over
would
and impenitent,
if
We
may
boldly
tell
is
the
Salvation
ready
men,
it is
if
If
men
are lost,
is
them, and
"
"Men
Ye
will not
(John
iii.
19
v. 40.)
Let us
immeme danger of
which
is
This
is it
a lesson
Once
is
comes out
man whose
history
here related.
With
his
all his
money
better
it
than his
"
soul.
"He
is
it
went
away
grieved."
Once
Lord
to his disciples,
How
hard
for
them that
" It
is
have riches
easier for a
for
last
kingdom of God."
a rich
man
kingdom of God."
The
day alone
how
It is not so
much
the
MARK, CHAP.
having money, as the trusting in
X.
211
soul.
it,
Let us pray
have.
St.
for
we
to
Paul,
"I have
MARK
X. 2834.
I
28 Then Peter began to say unto him, Lo, we have left all, and have
followed thee. 29 And Jesus answered and said, Verily I say unto you, There is no man that hath left house, or brethren, or sisters, or father, or mother, or
wife, or children, or lands, for sake, and the Gospel's, 30 But he shall receive an hundredfold now in this time, houses, and
32
in the
way going
up
to Jerusalem ; and Jesus went before them and they were amazed ; and as they followed, they were afraid.
And he
'
my
| '
'
brethren, and sisters, and mothers, and children, and lands, with perseand in the world to come cations eternal life. 81 But many that are first shall be last ; and the last first.
;
began to tell them what things should happen unto him, 33 Saying, Behold, we go up to Jerusalem and the Son of man shall be delivered unto the Chief Priests, and unto the Scribes and they shall condemn him to death, and shall de;
to the Gentiles 34 And they shall mock him, and shall scourge him, and shall spit ufMn him, and shall kill him and the third day he shall rise again.
liver
him
The
first
The
to
His
unto you.
no
man
for
my
hundred-fold
sisters,
now
children,
to
and
cutions
come
eternal Hfe.
this in the
word of
There
is
New
Testament
that
life
now
is
feai-ful
and faint-hearted in
^12
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
Let
all
who
are
it
comfort.
To
They
and
all
all
who make
now
in
this time."
to come.
joys,
They
and
shall
make up
for
saints,
new
friends,
They shall find in the communion of new relations, new companions, more
Their introduction into the family of
loving, faithful,
their conversion.
God
shall be
may sound
startling
and
many
ears.
experience that
it is true.
To
all
who make
sacrifices
life
As
and joy as
a
Their light
affliction for
Their
shall be
exchanged
for perfect
They
shall
no death, no
for the
sin,
no
no
cares,
no weeping, no parting,
former
God has
said
it,
and
it
be found
is
true.
Where
the saint
who
no encouragement
MARK, CHAP.
to serve Christ ?
X.
213
Where
to
is the man or woman whose hang down, and whose knees are
Let
all
such
ponder
is
this passage,
The time
endure for
short.
The end
sure.
Heaviness
may
Let us wait
on the Lord,
thing,
The second
these verses,
is
the solemn
The Lord Jesus saw the secret apostles. He gives them a word
their high thoughts.
of
His
in season to check
first shall
"
Many
that are
be
last,
and the
last first."
How
true
twelve apostles
man who
at one time
seemed
likely to
He was
one
who
He
in it
had the charge of the bag, and kept what was put
And
end.
yet that
man
fell
to a disgraceful
Again, there
did
at
not stand
who
for Christ
At
the time
risee,
nothing so
in the
much
And
man
was not
apostles,
WeU
might our
Lord
and the
last first."
How
to
214
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
!
Tliere
was a time
Greece,
England and
Gos-
Lord
say,
"the
be
last,
and the
How
when they
all
!
own
lives,
and remember
they
How
many began
selves,
and seemed
run well
for a season.
But where
False
in marriage
are they
now ?
of one.
A mistake
cases.
Few
who
cannot
call to
Few
have
failed
to discover,
often
first,
last are
Let us learn
like this.
we read
texts
It
We
must
persevere,
.
and go
We
blossoms of a few
and
joys,
and
fears.
he who
counts the
cost,
and
resolves,
The
in this passufferings
own
MARK, CHAP.
and
death.
X.
215
He
tells
His
disci-
ples of
One
after
another
He
which
Nothing
is
reserved.
Nothing
kept back.
Let us mark
of His
this well.
was the
result
own
free,
determinate,
and deliberate
choice.
From
He saw
the
cross before
to it a willing sufferer.
He
knew that His death was the needful payment that must be made to reconcile God and man. That payment He had covenanted and engaged to make at the price of His own blood. And so, when the appointed time came, like
a faithful surety,
sins
He
on Calvary.
bless
Let us ever
God
so ready to suffer,
so willing
to
be reckoned
sin,
and
His
He who
His engagement
to save all
engagement
only accept
who come
and
all
Him
gladly as
we
a small thing
Him.
MARK
35
X. 3545.
do for us whatsoever we shall desire. 36 And he said unto tliem, What would ye that I should do for you i
John, the sons of Zebedee, come unto him, saying, Uaater, we would that thou shouldest
216
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
41
37 They said unto him, Grant unto us, that we may sit, one on thy right hand, and the other on thy left hand, in thy glory. 38 But Jesus said imto them, Te know not what ye ask can ye drink of the cup that I drink of? and he baptized with the baptism that I am baptized with ? 39 And they said unto him, We can. And Jesus said unto them, Te shall indeed drink of the cup that I drink of; and with the baptism that I am baptized withal shall ye be bap:
And when
it,
they
began to be much displeased with James and John. 42 But Jesus called them to him, and saith unto them, Te know that they which are accounted to rule over
the Gentiles exercise lordship over
them and their great ones exercifle authority upon them. 43 But so shall it not be among
;
you
tized
40 But to sit on my right hand and on my left hand is not mine to give but it shall be given to them for whom
;
many.
it is
prepared.
Let
first
us
mark
disciples.
We
places in the
We
find
them
their
confidently
declaring
to
drink of
In
spite of
all
Notwithstand-
many shortcomings
to their
had
no misgivings as
and love
power
With
and grace,
own hearts, nor the nature of the path before them. They still dreamed of temporal crowns, and earthly rewards. They still knew not what manner of men they were. There are few true Christians who do not resemble James and John, when they first begin the service of
they neither
their
Christ.
knew
We
MARK,
tion,
CIIAP. X.
217
and
to
We
form an
incorrect
estimate of our
own
endurance.
tation
stand temp-
and
And
by
the result of
all is,
that
buy wisdom
dearly,
in our religion.
Like James
gifts,
and in
King
and
will
one day
But let
"through much
we must
dom
Let us
be
over-confident in our
fessing that
own
strength,
we can do any
Let
us, in short,
beware of a boastful
a humbling
If
fall.
may
save us
many
Lord
bestows on lowliness,
and
much
displeased with
James
to
their feelings,
He
them that
their ideas of
greatness were
He
218
KXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
in the preceding chapter,
down
up
ple
all
:
And He
backs
"Even
all
Man came
not to be ministered
Let
who
against self-esteem.
in
It is a feeling
which
deeply rooted
our hearts.
and
believe
in
Christ,
who have
felt
We ought often
to
St.
Paul,
;
vain glory
but
3.)
Blessed
is
that
man who
He
*The remarks of Quesnel on this passage are worth reading. says, " The ambition of clergymen is a gi'eat scandal in the
;
church, and is frequently an occasion of emulations, enmities, of all which the displeasure ot the divisions, schisms, and ware If aposapostles gives us an imperfect shadow and resemblance. tles, trained up in the school of humility and charity, are not free from this vice, what effects will not ambition produce in souls wholly immersed in flesh and blood, which have no motion but from then- passions, no law but that of theii* own desii'es ?"
"Men strangely forget themselves, when, as a ministiy appointed only for tbe sake of heaven, they are contending with the gi-eat ones of the earth in haughtiness and gi-andeur. It is very difficult to support equally the double character of a spiritual pastor and a temporal prince and to join humility with grandeur, meekness with dominion, and the constant application of a pastor with the
;
"The greatest prelate in the church, is he who is most conformable to the example of Christ, by humility, chaiity, and continual attendance on his flock, and who looks on himself as a servant to the children of God."
MARK, CHAP.
X.
219
he himself
is
Ahove
who
desire to
walk in
Christ's steps,
always a vast
field for
doing
it,
if
men have
the will
and
inclination.
a statesman, or an
selves, body,
artist.
and
soul,
and
the blessed
work of
making our
is
those
It fellow men more holy and more happy. who exert themselves by the use of Scripture means
them,
the
joy, of all
around
who
live
While they
at,
But
their
me-
on high.
men,
and be servants of
Let us
it
strive to
was when
we were bom.
like,
A
its
life
spent in this
way
is
truly Christ-
and brings
own reward.
language which
Let us mark,
He
says,
"The Son
many."
This
is
of
Man came
to give
His
life
a ransom for
carefully treasured
up
in the
It
is
220
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
no common death,
other holy men.
like the
death of a martyr, or of
public
It -was the
payment by an
sinful
man
li-
God.
It
By
made
satisfaction for
He
bore
own body on
the tree.
The Lord
died.
laid
on
Him
us.
When He
He
died for
When He suffered. He suffered in our stead. When He hung on the cross. He hung there as our Substitute. When His blood flowed, it was the price of our souls.
Let
all
who
It
is
true that
It
is
we
true
that
we
debts.
true that
we
paid a
full
The door
is
wide open.
The
prisoners
may
go
free.
May we aU
and walk in
know
this privilege
by
heartfelt experience,
passage
*The manner in which our Lord uses the word haptism in the now expounded, deserves careful notice. He says to two disciples, who were already baptized with water, " Can ye he bap-
am baptized with?" The expression very remarkable. It is a clear proof that in the New Testament a sacramental dipping or sprinkling with water is not always necessarily implied by the word baptism. It establishes the fact that there is such a thing as being baptized, iti a certain sense, without the use of any outward ordinance at all.
tized with the baptism that I
is
MARK, CHAP.
X.
221
MARK
4P
as he
X. 4652.
call the blind
to Jericho
and
went out of Jericho with his disciples and a great number of people,
blind Bartimreus, the son of Timaeus, sat by the highway side begging. 47 And when he heard that it was Jesus of Nazareth, he began to cry out, and say, Jesus, thou Son of David,
Be
thee.
50 And he, casting away his garment, rose, and came to Jesus. 51 And Jesus answered and said unto him, What wilt thou that I should do unto thee ? The blind man said unto him. Lord, that I might receive
48 And many charged hira that he should hold his peace: but he cried
the more a great deal.
my sight.
Thou Son
of
David, have mercy on me. 49 And Jesus stood still, and commanded him to be called. And they
And Jesus said unto him. Go thy way thy faith hath made thee whole. And immediately he received his
52
;
sight,
Let us see in
it,
as vre read,
of spiritual things.
This is a point that ought to be remembered in interpreting some of the passages in the Epistles where the words "baptism" and "baptized" are used. In such texts, for instance, as "baptism
doth save us,"
(1
Peter
iii.
21.) or
ou
Christ." (Gal.
27.,)
it
is
clear that
something more is contained than any mere outward ordinance. In both cases, the baptism of water is undoubtedly meant, but it is no less evident that something is implied also of deeper moment than any ordinance administered by man. In both cases it is a baptism which is accompanied by ti-ue faith, and a heart-reception of C hrist, such as was the baptism of the PhiUppian jailer. To quote such texts in support of what is commonly called the baptismal regeneration of infants, is to wrest and pervert them from their proper meaning. The conclusion of the text in St. Peter, for example, seems to place this beyond question. He emphatically warns us not to suppose that he means nothing more than the washing of water, or bodily reception of a sacrament, by the word baptism.
It has been a wise act on the part of translators of the New Testament to adhere to the Greek words "baptize" and "baptism" in rendering the Bible into the vernacular tongue of each nation. No other words could possibly imply all that the two Greek words
222
In the
faith.
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
first place,
we have
We
blind
And when he
began
to cry out,
and
say, Jesus,
mercy on me."
Bartimaeus was blind in body, but not in soul.
eyes of his understanding were open.
The
things
He saw
all.
saw at
He saw
that
Jesus,
who had
lived
this
an
David,
the Messiah
of
whom
long ago.
miracles.
He had witnessed none of our Lord's mighty He had not had the opportunity of beholding
all
Of
prived him.
He was
satis-
He of whom
so
such wonderful
must be able
to heal
And
convey. All other expressions would either weaken the sense of the inspired writers, or convey a false impression to the mind of the reader. To take one solitaiy instance, what could be more meagi'e or unsatisfactory than to render the passage now before us in the following way, "Can ye be sprinkled with the sprinkling, or dipped with the dipping, that I am sprinkled or dipped with ? " The firmness of the Biitish and Foreign Bible Society on this l)oint, ought to be cause of thankfulness to all the Protestant churches. In resolving to use the Greek words "baptize" and "baptism," in all their versions, they have exercised a wise
discretion.
MARK, CHAP.
near, he cried, "Jesus, thou
X.
223
on me."
Let us
faith.
strive
"We
bodily eyes.
grace,
But we have
and willingness
We have
down
own
lips,
written
impHcitly, and
commit our
to repose all
own
is
what
He
has
engaged
do for sinners.
all
is
He
"What
the beginning of
?
on Christ
What
is
of saving faith,
when once
word
AVhat
the
first
have mercy on
me?"
What
is
"Though now we
8.)
see
Him
we
rejoice
i.
fuU of glory."
(1
Peter
We We
with
an
to cry out,
On
.did
the contrary,
his peace."
be stopped.
If others
If others
not
know
worthwhile
to
any
rate,
knew
better.
He
cared
224
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
He
heeded
on him.
"He
cried the
so cry-
Let
all
who wish
to be saved,
mark
of BartimEEUs,
and walk
Like
him,
us,
we must care nothing what others think and say of when we seek the healing of our souls. There never will be wanting people who will teU us that it is " too that we are going "too fast," or soon," or "too late," "too far," that we need not pray so much, or read our
Bibles so
much,or
to
We
Like Bartimaeus, we
What
is
men
are so half-hearted in
seeking Christ ?
Why
and
God ?
The
answer
their
is
They do not
feel sufficiently
own
souls.
own
is,
They are not thoroughly convinced of own hearts, and the disease of their Once let a man see his own guilt, as it reaUy
till
and he
peace in Christ.
It
is
know
their
own
deplorable condition,
who
persevere, like
Li the
last place,
we have
Christ ought
home
once
as soon as
he was restored
He
Him
from
whom
At
he devoted the
new
MARK, CHAP.
the Son of David
X.
225
His history
"followed
the cure.
He
lively
emblem
of
make him
a follower of
into
life,
and
way
of hoKness.
Bought
who
re-
deemed him.
feel daily,
man
His
"the
"What
Lord
:
benefits."
He
(2 Cor. v. 14.)
It
wiU
do so for
all
The
self-
man who
deceiver,
is
a miserable " As
and
is
ruining his
own
soul.
many
as are
led
by the Spirit of God, they," and they sons of God." (Rom. viii. 14.)
Have we had our eyes opened by the Spirit of God ? Have we yet been taught to see sin, and Christ, and holiness, and heaven, in their true light ? Can we say. One thing I know, that whereas I was bHnd, now I see ? If so, we shall know the things of which we have been reading by experience. If not, we are yet in the broad way that leadeth to destruction, and have everything to
learn.
226
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
MAEK
1
XI. 111.
to Je-
them
7
go.
rusalem, unto Bethphage and Bethany, at the mount of Olives, he sendeth forth two of his disciples, 2 And saith unto them. Go your way into the village over against you and as soon as ye be entered into it, ye shall find a colt tied, whereon never man sat loose him, and bring him. 3 And if any man say unto you. Why do ye this ? say ye that the Lord hath need of him and straightway he will send him hither. 4 And they went their way, and found the colt tied by the door without in a place where two ways met
;
;
the colt to Jesus, and cast their garments on him and he sat upon him. 8 And many spread their garments and others cut down in the way
:
branches off the trees, and strawed them in the way. 9 And they that went before, and they that followed, cried, saying,
loose him. 5 And certain of them that stood there said unto them, What do ye, loosing the colt 6 And they said unto them even as
.''
and they
Hosanna ; Blessed is he that cometh in the name of the Lord 10 Blessed be the kingdom of our father David, that cometh in the name of the Lord Hosanna in the highest. 11 And Jesus entered into Jerusalem, and into the temple and when he had looked round about upon all things, and now the eventide was come, he went out unto Bethany with the twelve.
:
Jesus had
let
The
tion
is
a singular excepearthly
ministry.
the
history
of our Lord's
Generally speaking,
we
Himself
from public
notice,
parts of GaHlee,
ness,
cry,
often passing
and
He
should "not
streets."
nor
strive,
nor
own
choice to call
pubHc
He
deliberately
makes a pubHc
He
by a vast
Sam.
xix. 40.)
"We
may
well
believe
that the
MARK, CHAP.
tidings of our Lord's arrival.
XI.
227
probable there was
It
is
of that night.
is
New
Testament.
life
It
is
evident that
a scene in the
to
earthly
of Jesus,
in that
practical lessons
souls.
first place,
we may
learn from
own
last
act of
His
He came
to
He desired that all Jerusalem When He taught the deep things of the Spirit, He often spoke to none but His apostles. When He delivered His parables. He often addressed none but a multitude of poor and ignorant Galileans. When He worked His miracles, He was generally at Capernaum, or
Jerusalem to
die,
and
should
know
it.
in the land of
and
and
elders,
to Himself.
He knew
was about
to take place.
The
up,
eternal
of sinful men,
the
the great
it
about to be offered
slain,
great Passover
Lamb
about to be
the
He
that
public death.
He
way
228
the eyes of
all
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
Jerusalem were fixed upon Him,
died before
and
when He
died,
He
many
witnesses.
Let us treasure up
Let us
strive to
walk in the
steps
lis
intercession.
Let
cross.
From
beneath our
May we
more
our thoughts
much
He
died for us
How
this
did
He
when He
came
to it
on
remarkable occasion
Did
?
He come
told
this
world
"We are
His
keeping with
He never had When He crossed the sea of Galilee, it was in a borrowed boat. When He rode into the holy city, it was on a borrowed beast. When He
the tenor of His ministry.
any of the
was
buried,
it
was
in a borrowed tomb.
We
have in
this
simple
fact,
an instance of that
There
MARK, CHAP.
poverty,
tlie
XI.
229
may
he so
Who
fail to
observe, that
He who
sick
and
infirm,
that He
Him-
who
self
tempted,
submit to die
We We
see the
Him
We see the
ass, to
poverty of our
Lord in
his borrowing
an
carry
Him when He
entry.
It
is all
a fitness in
it all.
It
is
human
If
natures
If
we saw His
man.
we might
is
forget that
He was
it
we saw
Hij
the text, " He was crucified Nevertheless I wish it to he distinctly understood, that I utterly disclaim the idea of there being any moral ueakness in the human nature of Christ. The only weakness I mean is that sinless infirmity, which If inseparably connected with flesh and blood, and from which Adam, before the fall, was not exempt. Of all such weakness, I believe, o\ir Lord was partaker to the fullest extent.
scriptural warrant for through weakness." (2 Cor.
in
xiii. 4.)
Whether or not our Lord's riding iipon an ass instead of a hoi-se, was a mark of humiliation, is a point on which opinions diifer widely. Some dwell on the fact that the ass in oriental countries was an animal that even kings rode, and refer to Judges v. 10. " Speak, ye that ride on white asses," &c. Others tliink that the choice of an ass was pui-pos^ly made as emblematic of our Lord s lowly nature. Gerhard in his Commentaiy refers to a saying of
Tertullian. that the Gentiles called Christians " asinarii," in ridicule, because they believed in Christ who rode on an ass, and even
ass's
head
230
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
we migtt
forget
that
He was
We cannot
fort in
But we are intended to see in Jesus, human weakness united in one person. explain the mystery but we may take comGod.
;
is
is
our
Christ,
one
He
is
man,
He
is
God."
Lord
is
rode on a borrowed
in
itself
ass,
no
sin.
The
is
which
us,
occasion
much
dis-
of the
poverty there
around
are undoubtedly
very
sinftd.
much
of the
des-
wrong
in the
aght of God.
nothijig
for our bread,
it
But
to be
bom
to
all this
not sinful at
is
as honour-
God
He had often nowhere to He was rich, yet for our sakes He became like Him in circumstances, cannot be in
Let us do our duty in that
called us,
state of life to
fit
The Lord Silver and gold He had Though lay His head.
poor.
itself
To be
wrong.
and
if
He
thinks
to
keep us poor
us not
well
it is
be ashamed.
as for others. to be poor.
The Saviour of sinners cares for us as The Saviour of sinners knows what
MARK, CHAP.
XI.
231
MARK
hungry
13
XI. 1221.
the temple. 17 And he taught, saying unto it not written, My house shall be called of all nations the house of prayer but ye have made it a den of thieves. 18 And the Scribes and Chief
12 And on the morrow, when they were come from Bethany, he was
:
them, Is
And
having leaves, he came, if haply he might find any thing thereon and when he came to it, he found nothing but leaves for the time of figs was
:
.'
'
not yet. 14 And Jesus answered and said unto it, No man eat fruit of thee hereafter for ever.
it.
15 And they come te Jerusalem and Jesus went into the temple, and began to cast out them that sold and bought in the temple, and overthrew the tables of the moneychangers, and the seats of them that sold doves 16 And would not suffer that any man should carry any vessel through
:
Priests heard it, and sought how they might destroy him for they feared him, because all the people was astonished at his doctrine. 19 And when even was oome, he went out of the city. 20 And in the morning, as they passed by, they saw the fig tree dried
:
up from the
;
roots.
, '
21 And Peter calling to remembrance saith unto Mm, Master, behold, the fig tree which thou cursedst is withered away,
one of the
many
Lord Jesm
We
read that
"He
He
was hungry."
He had
a nature and
own
He
He
could be thirsty,
He
How
!
upon them
He who is the
it
contains,
the fruits of the earth, the fish of the sea, the fowls of the
air,
field, all
had
He,
even
He was
when He came
a great mystery.
This
is
No
wonder that
St.
8.)
232
EXPOSITORTf THOUGHTS.
knows
by experience.
He
ness,
When we
teU
Him
is
of
He knows what we
Surely this
mean,
just
and
is
to
our troubles.
human
nature requires
learn, in the second 'place,
We
This
is
from these
verses, the
and formality
in religion.
typical action.
We are told
it
He
pronounced on
man
eat
And we
moment
the next day the fig-tree was found " dried up from the
roots."
transaction
spiritual things.
was a
* There are two difficulties connected with the story of the withered fig tree, which weigh considerably on some minds, and
therefore desei-ve notice.
1 It is a difficulty with some persons that our Lord should have pronounced any curse at all on the fig tree. They say, that it looks like a needless destruction of an innocent and unoffending creature, and out of keeping with the spirit of Deut. xx. 19.
.
tree
Such objectors appear to forget that the withering of the fig was not a mere empty exhibition of power, like the pretended
MARK, CHAP.
XI.
233
tree
to
was
It
three-fold ap-
Though withered
fig tree
yet speaks.
There
was a
for the
Jewish Church.
a formal
religion,
when
for
Well would
it
have been
miracles of Mahomet and other false prophets. It was a mighty typical act, teaching deep spiritual lessons, lessons of such importance as might well justify the destruction of one of God's unintelligent creatures, in order tc convey them. Rememhering this, we have no more right to object to it, than to object to the daily offering of a lamb luider the Mosaic law. In that offering the Ufe of an innocent and unoffending creature was daily taken away. But the gi-eat end of daily setting before the eyes of man the one sacrifice for sin, justified the taking away the life of the lamb. Just in the same way we may justify our Lord's taking away the life of the
tree.
It is a difficulty with some persons that the account of St. contains the words, " the time of figs was not yet." They ask to be told why our Lord should have gone to the tree seeking fruit, when tlie season for figs had not yet arrived ?
2.
Mark
The answers to this difficulty are various. The simplest of them appears to be as follows. " The time of figs, as a general rule, had not yet come. But our Lord seeing a fig tree covered with leaves, unlike the otJier fig trees, had a right to suppose that figs were to be found on it, and therefore came to it." It is no small recommendation of this view that it supplies an exact illustration of the state of the Jewish Church, when our Lord was upon earth. The time of figs was not yet, that is, the nations of the earth were all in darkness, and bore no fiaiit to the glory of God. But among the nations, there was one covered with leaves, that is the Jewish Church, full of light, knowledge, privileges and high profession. Seeing this fig tree full of leaves, our Lord came to it seeking fruit, that is. He came to the Jews justly expecting them to have fruit according to their outward profession. But when our Lord came to this leafy Jewish fig tree. He found it utterly destitute of
and unbelieving. And the end was that He pronounced sentence on it, gave it over to be destroyed by the Komans, and scattered the Jews over the earth.
fruit, faithless,
234
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
if it
There was a
the world.
Christ's visible
Church
fession of Christianity,
and holy
living,
to lay to heart.
^But above
aU there was
hypocriit
Well would
be
for
all
who
name
to live while in
their
own
sufficient to
They
add
to
our condemnation.
Like the
fig
leaves of which
will not
all-
Adam
when we stand
bear
fruit,
before
Him
our
No we must
!
or be lost
fruit in
for ever.
lives,
There must be
and
Without such
fruits as these
a profession
We
from
this passage,
set
how
reverently
we ought
to use places
is
which are
is
apart for
public worship.
This
a truth which
taught us in a
MARK, CHAP.
striking
XI.
235
Christ's conduct,
when He went
cast out
We
he
them that
sold
them that
not written.
sold doves."
And we
He
My
all
nations
made
it
a den of
We need
this
action
Lord on
this
occasion.
Like the
cursing of the
fig tree,
nently typical.
But
in saying this,
we must
not allow
which
lies
That lesson
is
the sinfulness of careless and irreverent behaviom* in the use of buildings set apart for the public service of God.
It
**
was not
so
much
His action clearly indicates the feeling with which every " house of prayer" should be regarded. A Christian place
of worship no doubt
is
in
tabernacle, or temple.
Its
meaning.
It
is
But
that a
so,
to
There
is
is
due to a
is
offered up,
a reverence which
236
it is foolisli
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
and unwise
to
brand as
is
superstitious,
and
There
a certain feeling of
to belong
to
all
places
where Christ
bom again,
to
At
all
events the
mind
Lord Jesus
in this passage
He
sight.
in places of worship,
and
irreverence or profanity
is
an offence in His
to
we
go in a serious
fools.
Let us
mind where we
are,
business
we
are about,
and
what we
are doing,
what
we
are
in whose presence
engaged.
Let us
money
at
them with us
buying and
to church.
selling in
religious assembhes.
The Lord
displeased.
Hves,
who
cast out
buyers and
sellers
is
He sees such
conduct
He
much
MARK
XI. 2226.
things soever ye desire, when ye pray, believe that ye receive them, and ye shall have them. 25 And when ye stand praying, forgive, if ye have ought against any that your Father also which is in heaven may forgive you your tres:
22 And Jesus answering saith unto them, Have faith in God. 23 For verily I say unto you, That whosoever shall say unto this mountain. Be thou removed, and be thou casfinto the sea ; and shall not doubt in his heart, but shall believe that those things which he saith shall come to pass he shall have whatsoever he
;
passes.
Baith.
What
26 But if ye do not forgive, neither will your Father which is in heaven forgive your trespasses.
MARK, CHAP.
XI.
237
Let
the
This
first
by a
and
proverbial saying.
plish works,
man
as
to
accom-
and overcome
great
is
impressed
to exercise
upon us
faith
by a general exhortation
when we
pray.
"What
when ye
have them."
a reasonable
When He
he
may
answered.
ask in
faith,
To use
"Let him
6.)
The
faith here
commended must be
distinguished from
* It
is
removing mountains
must be taken in a fiffurative sense. It appears to be a proverbial expression, and to be used as such by St. Paul, 2 Cor. xiii. II. Moreover it is a promise that must be interpreted with sober and reasonable limitations. We have no right to expect that whatever we take it into our heads to ask of God shall at once be done for us, whether it be for His glory and our sanctification or not. We have no warrant for presuming that in every difficulty and trouble, God will at once work a miracle and deliver us from our anxiety, as soon as we make it a subject of prayer. The things about which we pray, must be things having special reference to our own vocation and providential position. Moses at the head of
the twelve tribes of Israel, Elijah on Mount Carmel, Paul in the Philippian prison, might confidently expect miraculous interpositions in answer to prayer, in a way that private individuals may not expect in our days. Above all, we must not think to prescribe to God the time and way in which He shall " remove
mountains "
for us.
238
EXPOSITORY THOLGHTS.
is
essential to justij&cation.
is
In principle
It
is
But
is
in the object
it is
and operations
useful to under-
Justifying faith
man
"
Its
atonement
faith
on the
cross.
is
The
it.
before us
but
still
not to be con-
And
its
and
the character of
God
in Christ.
has spoken,
is
in our religion.
Christianity.
In
it
fact, it is
" By
He
is,
and
He
is
To know
to the
in the sight of
Him." God, we
Hebrews.
desire to
Do we
of our
in the
knowledge
progress
Do we wish to make
Christians,
let
in our religion,
and not
mere babes in
for
spiritual things ?
Then
us pray daily
more
faith,
faith with
most jealous
watchfulness.
Here
is
A flaw or weakness
MARK, CHAP.
of our inner man.
XI.
239
trial,
on the
Happy
are they
and
to
walk by
not by sight.
"
He
shall not
make
Let us
lesson
is
There
no
faith, of
just
But
is
prayer.
we
our prayers.
But then
it is
heard which do not come from a forgiving heart. ye stand praying, forgive,
if
"When
forgive
in
heaven
may
The value
offer
of our prayers,
we can
us
all
understand,
iy
which we
one which
But the
point before
it
is
deserves.
Our prayers
and
earnest, fervent,
and
sincere,
m the
name
of Christ.
besides.
They must contain one more ingredient They must come from a forgiving heart. We
for
mercy,
if
we
to our brethren.
We
to
we ask
have pardoned
we
240
cherisli malice
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
towards our fellow men.
We
must have
"We must
we wish
we have
forbear.
a heart-searching subject.
malice, bitterness,
fearfully great.
and
party-spirit
of
is
No wonder
that so
many
is
prayers seem
to be
It
a subject which
of knowledge
and utterance in
their
approaches to God.
It
is
But
all
on our minds.
He
has given
it
We are
all
we
forgive
for
them that
if
WeU would it be
many,
they
Do we know what it is to be of a forgiving spirit ? Can we look over the injuries that we receive from time to time in this evil world ? Can we pass over a transgression
If not, where
is
our
Christianity ?
why
should
Let us
in this matter.
forgive,
the
nearest approach
Jesus.
we can make
Adam.
to the
is
mind
of Christ
to a
This
is
most suitable
MARK, CHAP.
is
XI.
241
God's free
life
for-
to eternal
in the
world to come.
Then
MARK
27
XI. 2733.
30 The baptism of John, was it from heaven, or of men ? answer me. 31 And they reasoned with themselves, saying, If
;
again to Jerusalem and as he -was walking in the temple, there come to him the Chief Priests, and the Scribes, and the
:
we
.>'
shall say.
From
elders,
28
And
By what
au-
thority doest thou these things ? and who gave thee this authority to do these things ? 29 And Jesus answered and said irnto them, I will also ask of you one question, and answer me, and I will tell you by what authority I do these
heaven he will say, Why then did ye not believe him 32 But if we shall say of men they
;
things?
feared the people for all men counted John, that he was a prophet indeed. 33 And they answered and said unto Jesus, cannot tell. And Jesus answering saith unto them. Neither do I tell you by what authority I do these things.
:
We
Let
ness
may he in
"We
to
ecclesiastical
office.
and
scribes
and elders"
coming
difficulties
and
objections in the
way
of His work.
242
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
knowledge.
held,'
And
yet
we
to
have
the
and
bitter
shew
must beware of depending too much on ordained men. They must not look up to ministers as Popes, or regard them as infallible. The orders of no church confer infallibility,
whether they be Episcopal, Presbyterian, or IndeBishops, priests, and deacons, at their best, are
pendent.
may
and
and
so far as they
is
foUow
further.
There
Bishop of
who makes no
mistakes.
That one
is
*The
reading
:
ai*e
worth
" The Church is not tied to those teachers who are in the regular succession, for they frequently bit from the path of truth. In such cases the Chvirch ought not to follow their eiTors, but to embrace the truth as set forth in the word. Thus, Aaron setting up the golden calf, Urijah the high priest in the time of Aliaz, building Pashur and the other priests in Jeremiah's time, all a new altar, erred most grievously. And in this very passage, the priests sitting in Moses' seat reject the Messiah Himself, and impugn His autliority. But if those who succeeded Aaron in the divinely appointed priesthood of the Old Testament, could err, and in fact, did occasionally err, how much more likely to err are the Poj)es of Eome, who cannot prove from God's word that the Pojie's office has been instituted by Christ in the New Testament."
MAUK, CHAP.
the Lord Jesus Christ.
failure,
XI.
243
is
In
Him
alone
no weakness, no
no shadow of
entirely on
Him.
infirmity. Let us learn to lean more Let us " call no man father on earth."
we
shall never
be disappointed.
discredit
These chief
and
deny the
They
His
life
was
sinful.
What
then did
they do ?
to attention,
and
doest thou
who gave
who undertake
be
* Brentius has some sensible remarks on the unreasonableness of the chief priests and Pharisees, who would neither keep the temple fiom the encroachment of the buyers and sellers, nor let They would neither exercise the lawful others do it for them. authority which was in their hands, nor allow of our Lord exercising it for them. He shows the similarity of their conduct to that of the Greek and Boman chiu"ches, and to that of a foolish head of a family, who neither corrects his children himself, nor likes any one to coiTect them for him. And he concludes by saving, "Let us learn that every one should do his own duty, or else yield up his place to another. Let us not be like the dog in the manger, who would neither eat the hay himself, nor yet allow the ox to eat it." The liistory of the chvu-ch of Chi-ist contains only too much Ministers and teachers have often of the dog in the manger neglected the souls of their people shamefully, and yet found fault with any one who has tried to do good, and haughtily demanded his authority
!
Roman Catholic writer, Quesnel, on tliis remarkable "Those who find themselves vanquished by ti'Uth, generally endeavour to reject authority. There are no persons more foi^n^ard to demand of others a reason for their actions, than those who tliink they may do evei7tliing themselves without control."
The
reflections of the
ai"e
:
subject
244
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
St.
"No man
is
called of
(Heb.
V.
4.)
And
of the
sacrificing priest
no longer
"It
is
man
to take
upon
him
the
office
and sent
to execute the
same."
But
it
is
one
God can
be done.
This
is
them down
Let us beware of
narrow
spirit,
and
specially in
Unquestionably we must
It is
as valuable there as
it is
in
an army.
But we
must not suppose that God is absolutely tied to the use We must not forget that there may of ordained men. be an inward call of the Holy Ghost without any out-
ward
call of
man, no
less
than an outward
call of
man
first
call of the
:
Holy Ghost.
The
all is this
"Is a
man
Him ? What
does he teach ?
How
does he Hve ?
Is
God and be
content.
We
MARK, CHAP.
XI.
245
however high
diseases,
is useless,
and diploma,
if
he cannot cure
and
he
drilled, if
enemy
The
best
doctor
is
the
man who
fight.
man who
can
last place,
may
The
chief priests
They dared was " of men," because they feared the people.
confess that
it
they saw our Lord would say, " "Why did ye not believe
him do?
It
He
testified plainly of
me."
What
said,
lie.
They
"we
cannot
teU."
a melancholy
fact,
is
far
There
who evade
When
pressed to attend to
They
them
also are
ashamed
And so they answer exhortations to repentance and decision by false excuses. One man pretends that he "cannot
understand" the doctrines of the Gospel.
us that he really "tries"
progress.
Another assures
As a general
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
rule,
" we cannot
The
plain truth
that
we ought
to
be very slow to
We
really
may
is
when "I
not."
honest
spirit
in religious
matters
to live
a mighty
blessing.
Once
let
man
be wilHng
up
to his light,
and act up
to his
knowledge, and
he
will soon
know
that
The ruin of thousands is 17.) they deal dishonestly with their own
while in
reality they
They
"love
(John
iii.
19.)
MAEK
1
XII. 112.
an hedge about
and digged a place for the winefat, and built a tower, and let it out to husbandmen, and went into a far
country.
my son. 7 But those husbandmen said among themselves, This is the heir; come,
ence
let
shall be cur's.
he sent to the husbandmen a servant, that he might receive from the husbandmen of the
2
at the season fruit of the vineyard.
And
And they took him, and killed him, and cast him out of the vineyard. 9 What shall therefore the lord of the vineyard do he will come and
8
.-'
3 And they caught him, and beat him, and sent him away empty. 4 And again he sent unto them another servant and at him they cast stones, and wounded hitn in the nead, and sent him away shamefully hand;
destroy the husbandmen, and will give the vineyard unto others. 10 And have ye not read this Scripture; The stone which the builders rejected is become the head of the
comer
was the Lord's doing, and marvellous in our eyes } And they sought to lay hold on him, but feared the people for they knew that he had spoken the parable against them and they left him, and went their way.
11 This
it is
led.
again he sent another; and him they killed, and many others; beating some, and killing some. 6 Having yet therefore one son, his
And
12
well-beloved, he sent
him
also last
MARK, CHAP.
XII.
247
The
left
The
histor}-^
Egypt down
is
salem,
Under the
Jesus
fifteen
tells
hundred
it to
attentively,
and
apply
ourselves.
first place,
the
Jewish
Church and
nation.
He
them
gave to them
as a
peculiar privileges.
He
dealt with
man
deals
"a
vineyard."
He
He
He
them
favour.
He
and
The
family
distin-
No
and
so
many
signal
And we
that
too,
who
so.
live in
we have
cannot say
God
We
like
Why
are
are
we
China
Why
we
Hindostan
of God.
?
is
We
owe
it all to
It
what England
is
among
know
we provoke
248
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
to take our mercies
God
away.
If Israel
had peculiar
Let Englishthat which
men mark
happened
this
lest
to Israel should
happen
also to
them.
and
What
is
their
to
One
and asked
One servant
after another
" They
and despised
his words,
his prophets."
Yet
Lord
till
there
was no remedy."
And we
too,
longsuffering
we no
thankful for ?
we have abundant
cause to say,
He
candlestick away,
and
to deal
with us
longsuffering
still.
Let us beware that we do not presume on His goodness Let us hear in His mercies a loud
call to
us to
bear
fruit,
and
let us strive to
MARK, CHAP.
ness
XII.
249
(Prov. xiv. 34.)
and
human
to
summary
messengers,
parable.
Prophet
after
Miracle
after miracle
lasting effect.
The Son
to
of
God
at last
came down
God
dwelling
among them,
as the
Him
no truth
and believed
heart.
human
it
Let the
among the
standing proofs of
it.
Let us see in
women can
of the
and
miracles,
"The
carnal
mind
is
enmity
when Jesus became a man, and Hved upon They saw Him holy, harmless, undefiled, going about doing good. Yet they would not have Him, rebelled against Him, and at last killed Him. Let us dismiss
is
common
good
is
250
enough
to
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
make
man
a Christian.
The
great experi-
We
and
too,
like Israel,
Nothing but
the Spirit of
""We must be
bom
may
again." (John
7.)
impenitent.
The
Jews, to
whom
parable which
applied to
forefathers
we have been reading, saw clearly that it themselves. They felt that they and their
to
whom
the vineyard
fruit to
was
let,
have rendered
God.
They
felt
labourers,
who had
vineyard His dues, and had "shamefully handled" His servants, "beating some, and killing some."
felt
act of wickedness,
were about
Him
knew
it,
perfectly well.
"They knew
them."
repent.
that
He had
Though convicted by
sin.
their
own
were hardened in
this
awfal
fact,
quite possible
to
know
that
we
are wrong,
and be unable
deny
it,
and yet
to cleave to
hell.
miserably in
The thing
we
all
need,
is
MARK, CHAP.
change of heart and
Till
will.
XIT.
251
pray earnestly.
this,
For
this let us
rest.
we have
it
this,
let
us never
Without
we
Withknowing
out
we may
live all
our
lives,
inwardly that
persevere in
we are wrong, and yet, our own way, and die in our
the Jews,
MARK
XII. 1317.
risy, said
13 And they send unto him certain of the Pharisees and of the Herodians, to catch him ia his words. 14 And when they were come, they say unto him, Master, we know that
me ?
see
it.
16
And
they brought
it.
And he
thou art true, and carest for no man for thou regardest not the person of men, but teachest the way of God in truth Is it lawful to give tribute to Cajsar or not ? 15 Shall we give, or shall we not give ? But he, knowing their hypoc:
saith unto them. Whose is this imago and superscription ? And they said
unto him,
17
Csesar's.
Jesus answering said unto them. Render to Caesar the things that are Caesar's, and to God the things that are God's. And they marvelled at him.
And
Let
men
coming together to
Him
with a
superstitious formal-
who
religion.
ol the world,
who despised all religion, and cared more for pleasing men than God. Yet when there came among them a mighty teacher who assailed the ruling passions of both alike, and spared neither formalist nor worldling, we see them making common cause, and uniting in a common
effort to stop
His mouth.
from the beginning of the world. on at the present day.
252
"Worldly
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
men and
formalists
have
little
real sjonpathy
They
dislike
But
there
is
is
one thing
the pure
is
And
we
man and
We
their di\isions
they
it
Roman
emperor, or not ?
we
give, or
shall
we
not give?"
Here was a
question,
which
it
seemed
answer without
peril.
priests, as
one
who regarded
Rome.
H our
who The
it
Lord had
replied,
"
Do
Roman
government.
Surely
we may
see in
That old
questions
"We
shall
all
and puzzling,
as the
questions,
them
to
JLA.RR,
CHAP.
XIT.
253
"What are
of God,
tlie
where
of the
where the
ci\41
what
are lawful
claims and
spiritual claims,
all
it
untie,
Let us pray
to
so
much
as
when
power.
energies
In such
are
collisions
time
is
wasted,
off
misapphed,
ministers are
drawn
the
in
our time,
Lord,"
is
His
enemies.
He Their flattering words did not deceive Him. " knew their hypocrisy." His all-seeing eye detected the
"potsherds covered with silver dross" which stood before
Him.
too
He was
many
fine speeches.
He made the daily practice of His own enemies supply Him with an answer to their cunning question. He tells them to "bring Him a penny," a common coin which they themselves were in the habit of using. He asks them
"whose image and superscription"
landmarks between the prince and the
should be done, while it is not at doing of it." Matthew Henry.
all fit
are stamped
subjects,
upon that
it is
fit
which
254
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
to reply, "Caesar's."
They were
Roman
coin, issued
and circulated by
confession they
Roman
government.
By
their
own
them.
silences
words, " Render unto Caesar the things that are Caesar's,
He
bids
them
to
tribute to the
Roman government
in temporal things,
by using
so.
its
do
things,
In
short.
He
bids the
this
to
interfere
power.
So
far
from
it
ought
to
make him a
quiet,
and faithful subject. He ought to regard the powers that be as " ordained of God," and to submit to
loyal,
their rules
and regulations,
so long as the
law is enforced,
If the
though he
may
collision,
no
man.
king, he
an
idol.
Like Daniel,
though he submits
MARK, CHAP.
Let us often pray
for a larger
XII.
255
spirit of
measure of that
Many
Christ,
relative
Many
are
by
Happy
is
this
passage, understands
application of
it
rightly,
to his
own
times.
MARK Xn.
the Saddncces, which say there is no resurrection ; and they asked him, saying, 19 Master, Moses wrote unto us, If a man's brother die, and leave his wife behind him, and leave no children, that his brother should take his wife, and raise up seed unto his brother. 20 Now there were seven brethren and the first took a wife, and dying
1827.
18
she be of
to wife.
them ?
had her
24 And Jesus answering said unto them, Do ye not therefore err, because ye know not the Scriptures, neither
the power of
25 For
shall rise
from
left
no
seed.
21
And
And
:
22
also.
no seed
rise,
whose wife
shall
the dead, they neither marry, nor are given in marriage but are as the angels which are in heaven. 26 And as touching the dead, that thsy rise have ye not read in the book of Moses, how in the bush God spake unto him, saying, I am the God of Abraham, an^ the God of Isaac, and the God of Jacob } 27 He is not the God of the dead, but the God of the living ye therefore do greatly err.
;
: :
is
worth reading, as an illustration of the subject now before us. was an unbelieving emperor. He was an apostate, a wicked man, and an idolater. And yet Christian men served as soldiers under this unbelieving emperor. When the cause of Christ was concerned, they acknowledged no commander but Him that was in heaven. "\Mien the emperor wished them to worship idols or burn incense to them, they prefened honouring God before him. But wlien he said, 'draw out in order of battle, march against that nation,' they obeyed him. They drew a distinction between their eternal master, and their tem})oral master and yet were submissive to their temporal master for their eternal master's sake."
" Julian
;
256
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
verses relate a conversation between our
These
Lord
The
religion of these
little
They
the
They
too, like
Lord with
hard questions.
to fare better
The Church
than
its
of Christ
Master.
Formalism on one
for
and
infidelity
whose
attacks
we must always be
this passage,
arguments of infidels.
is
The
illustration
They
tell
him
of a
woman who
of
"
there
the strongest
against such
tell us,
appearance of improbability.
The chances
are
But that was nothing to the Sadducees. All they cared for was to raise a difficulty, and if possible The doctrine of the resurto put our Lord to silence. rection they had not the face manfully to deny. The
possible consequences of the doctrine
member,
infidels.
if
imhappily
we have
at
any time
to argue
with
For one
thing, let us
remember that an
infidel
and ab-
MARK, CHAP.
XII.
257
We must
avoid
mode
of
argument as
far as possible.
It is leaving
We must endeavour,
the great
we
can, to
plain facts
and evidences of
For
another
thing, let us
and uncharitable
it is
to
say
this.
needful.
Thousands of professed
have con-
the
Above
science.
all, let
us
infidel
has a con-
we may always appeal The very men who talk most loudly and
To
this
confidently.
disdainfully
at
and
We learn,
Our Lord's
this plainly.
from
this passage,
how
He
words in reply to the Sadducees declare says, " Do ye not err, because ye know "
is
The
proved by
facts in
The
re-
The
false doctrines of
of Christendom
were
268
times
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
when the Bible was kept back from the people. The Protestant Reformation was mainly effected by The Churches translating and circulating the Bible.
which are most flourishing
at this
The
in
are
nations
is is
most most
known.
The
most studied.
The
godliest
The
These
holiest
people.
Let these things sink deeply into our hearts, and bear
fruit in
lest
our
lives.
we
fall into
some deadly
it
error.
it diligently,
and make
Let us labour
The
will be.
Not least, let us teach our children to value the Bible. The very best portion we can give them, is a knowledge
of the Scriptures.
"We
from
this passage,
how
from
we
rise
now.
Our Lord
tells us,
many
dif-
life to
come.
is
It
must needs be
the grave
MARK, CHAP.
US,
XII.
259^
and
if
more were
Let
told,
stand
it.
it suffice
be like
them,
their bodies
on earth ;
who knew
once shall
know them
is
again.
But though
raised with a
from
everything which
infirmity.
now an
Mahomet's gross
be no need
there
shall
there there
no need of births
who
and
are removed.
his Christ,
attend on
Him
without
distraction,
face continually,
will perfectly,
in a glorious body,
they
shall
There
is
to eat,
and what
to put on,
^what how
to to
(2 Cor. v.
manage
choose.
his affairs,
where
to live,
In the world
to come,
shall be changed.
Nothing
shall be lacking to
make
One thing only we must carefully bear in mind. Let us take heed that we rise again in "the resurrection of life,"
and not in " the resurrection of condemnation."
(John
260
V. 29.)
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
To
resurrec-
To the
worldly,
wiU be a
are one
for-
Let us never
us,
rest
till
we
to a life to come.*
* The text by which our Lord silenced the Sadducees, and proved has been a cause the resmrection to be a scriptural doctrine, Some have wondered tliat of siu^rise to many Bible readers. our Lord should have chosen tliis text, when others far more plain might have been adduced. Some have been unable to see the force and cogency of the text as any proof at all of the resmrection of the body. As to the particular fitness of the text, as a proof, compared to It may well be suspected othere we are perhaps very poor judges. that there is a fulness of meaning in some texts of scriptiue, which in our hasty and superficial reading we have not yet fathomed. At any rate it is clear that to a Jewish hearer of the Lord the argimient was so forcible as to be unanswerable. This quotation and the famous one in John x. 34, go far to show that the Jewish mind saw a depth of meaning in scriptural expressions, which many of us in modem times have not at all seen yet. It is a matter in
to learn.
the God of Abraham, &c.," being a convincing proof of the resurrection of the body, there is a passage in Bishop Peareon, which is worth reading. He says of this text as quoted by our Lord, " With the force of this argument the multitude was astonished, and the Sadducees silenced. For under the name of God was understood a gi-eat benefactor, a God of promise, and to be 'their God' was to bless them and reward them ; as in them to be his senants,' and his people was to Now Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob believe in him and obey him. had not received the promise which they expected, and therefore God after their death desiring still to be called " their God," he thereby acknowLedgeth that he had a blessing and a reward for them still, and consequently that he will raise them to another So that the argument of our life, in which they may receive it. Saviour is the same which the Jews have diawn irom another (Exod. vi. 3, 4.) I appeared unto Abraham, place of Moses. unto Isaac and unto Jacob, by the name of God Almighty, but by ray name Jehovah was I not made known to them. Kevertlieless I have established my covenant with them, to give them the land to give their sons,' but to give them It is not said of Canaan.' the land,' and therefoi'e because while they lived here they enjoyed it not, they must rise again that they may receive the promise."
As
am
'
'
'
'
'
'
MARK, CHAP.
XII.
261
MARK Xn.
28 And one of the Scribes came,
28-34.
There
is
as thyself.
and having heard them reasoning and perceiving that he had answered them well, asked him,
together,
mandment greater than these. 32 And the Scribe said unto him,
Well, Master,thou hast said the truth for there is one God ; and there is none other but he 33 And to love him with all the heart, and with all the understanding, and with all the soul, and with all the strength, and to love his neighbour as himself, is more than all whole burnt offerings and sacrifices. 34 And when Jesus saw that he answered discreetly, he said unto him, Thou art not far from the kingdom of God. And no man after that durst ask him any question.
:
Which
all?
is
the
lirst
commandment
of
29
first
And
of
Jesus answered him. The the commandments is. Israel ; The Lord our God is
all
30 And thou shalt love the Lord thy God with all thy heart, and with all thy soul, and with all thy mind, and with all thy strength this is the
:
first
commandment.
31
this,
And the second is like, namely Thou shalt love thy neighbour
These
Lord
third
For the
we
see our
Lord
tried
by a hard question.
and Sadducees,
Having put
is
He
first
much
difference of
is
opinion prevailed
among
the Jews
" "Which
the
commandment of all." We have reason to bless God that so many hard questions were propounded to our
Lord.
many
evil.
other cases,
we He can make
His own
see
the
to the
praise.
He
can
make
His people.
Little
would confer on
all
Christendom.
eater
came
262
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
verses, hoic high
to
is
our Lord
The
wide one
"
Which
is
the
first
commandment
of all ?
"
The answer he
he expected.
received
He
hears these
God with
all
thy
thy strength
comthou
mandment.
And
the second
is like,
namely
this,
God and
our neighbour
We are
to give far
more than
affections,
this.
and
We are to give love, the strongest of all the most comprehensive. A rule like
It
makes
all
necessary.
Nothing
where
there
is love.
How
striking again
is
measure in which
We
are to love
we should love God and our neighbour ! God better than ourselves, with all the
We
us.
with him in
and
others, either
little
or too
much
of them.
MARK, CHAP.
XII.
263
We
them
as ourselves,
We
towards
all
God in the matter of excess. He is worthy of we can give Him. We are therefore to love Hirn
all
with
our heart.
rules continually before
all
that
we
both as regards
God and
man.
that
By them
let
may happen to beset us, as to right and wrong. Happy is that man who strives to frame his life according
to these rules.
naturally
who can say with truth, that they have perfectly loved God and perfectly loved man ? Where is the person on earth who must not plead " guilty," when tried by such a law as this ?
Christ.
Where
men
or women
No wonder
no
flesh
that the
Scripture
says,
"there
is
none
"By
iii.
be justified." (Rom.
It
is
only gross
always be the
man
verses,
how
man may
of Christ.
264
EXPOSITORY THOLGHTS.
Scribe, in the passage
The
now
before usj
was
evi-
dently a
man
all.
of
his equals.
He
saw
*'
this.
There
is
God
and there
all
all
is
He
and
to love
Him
with
all all
is
the the
more
These
than
all
whole burnt
offerings
and
sacrifices."
generation amongst
whom
he
No wonder
that
we
read next, that our Lord said, "thou art not far from the
kingdom of God."
we
are
this
man became
On
a mournful silence.
The
ment
tell
\is
Matthew throws not a gleam The other parts of the New Testanothing about him. We are left to draw
his
make up
mind
to give
up
all
and follow
43.)
In
short,
outside.
Cases like
that
of this Scribe,
are
unhappily far
who,
like
him, see
of
religious truth,
and yet
live
There
MARK, CHAP.
are few things whicli are so
XII.
265
overlooked as the
much
may
go in religious attainments,
May we
mark
mere
there
intellectual knowledge.
is
"We
so.
live in
days
when
great danger
of
doing
Education makes
children
acquainted with
many
things in religion, of
which
their parents
But
We
the sight
doctrines
into our
May we
till
we have truly repented, really behoved, and have been made new creatures in Christ Jesus. If we rest satisfied with being " not far from the kingdom," we shall find at last that we are shut out for evermore..
never rest
we
kingdom of God,
MARK
XII. 3544.
35 And Jesus answered and said, while he taught in the temple, How say the Scribes that Christ is the Son
of David?
40 Which devour widows' houses, and for a pretence make long prayers
these shall receive grepter damnation. 41 And Jesus sat over against the and beheld how the people and cast money into the treasury many that were rich cast in much. 42 And there came a certain poor widow, and she threw in two mites, which make a farthing. 43 And he called unto him his disciples, and saith unto them. Verily I say unto you, That this poor widow hath cast more Wi, than all they which have cast into the treasury 44 For all they did cast in of their abundance ; but she of her want did cast in all that she had, even all her
treasury,
:
:
36 For David himself said hj' the Holy Ghost, The Lord said to my Lord, Sit thou on my right hand, till I make thine enemies thy footstool. 37 David therefore himself calleth him Lord and whence is he then his son ? And the common people heard
;
him
gladly.
38 And he said unto them in his doctrine. Beware of the Scribes, which love to go in long clothing, and love salutations in the marketplaces, 39 And the chief seats in the synagogues, and the uppermost rooms at feasts:
living.
266
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
Him
in
His
We
Him
pas-
hard questions,
questions,
to observe,
more
The
Our Lord Himself propounds it. He asks His enemies about Christ and the meaning of Holy Scripture. Such questions are always truly profitable.
character.
Well would
were
less
it
if theological discussions
about
to salvation.
verses, hoto
Jewish
He does
it.
by
And
was
in so doing
He
subject, about
to write,
We
(John
in another place,
to teach
men
about
Christ,
self
by
types,
and prophecy,
till
He Himso
We should
much
undoubtedly
Law and
the Prophets,
but nowhere
is
He
so
much
to
MARK, CHAP.
of Psalms.
XII.
267
at
sufferings glory,
His
first
triumph at
and His
final
chief subjects of
many
It
as
is
much
In
its
ment
is
New.
many
which have
hidden
know not
all
the Bible.
AU
is
given by
inspiration,
aU. is profitable.
One
and damage
to our souls.
boastful contempt
for the
first
Let us
verses,
how
This
odious
is
a lesson which
He
their ostentatious
manner
of dressing,
their
man
intended to
make men
all
And He
Of
all
winds up
by the solemn
men
can
fall,
none seem so
268
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
At
It
is
aU
events,
bad enough
to
sin,
and
to
But
it is
even worse to
we
serve the
Let us beware of
abominable
Whatever we do
Let us be
wear a
cloak.
real, honest,
our Christianity.
We
We may take
and
profession,
in poor short-sighted
man by
little
talk
affectation
is
of devoutness.
But God
is
not mocked.
He
a dis-
His
tinsel,
The day
of
judgment
is
The "joy
5.)
of the hypocrite
(Job xx.
His end
will be
shame and
everlasting contempt.
One
thing, however,
must ^never be
forgotten in con-
hypocrisy.
Let us not
rehgion,
This
is
make a false profession of that others need not make any profession at all. a common delusion, and one against which we
because some
It does not follow, because
must
carefully guard.
some
feel,
that
it
we
into
and bring
contempt by a
to
MARK, CHAP.
of our conversation.
is
XII.
26^
visible
and
Scribes.
Let us con-
decidedly,
who
are honest
and
true.
Let us
from these
verses,
how
This
pleasing to Christ
is
a lesson which
is
We
He
box or "treasury."
He
had
And
then
we hear Him pronounce the solemn words, "This poor woman hath cast more in than they all," ^more in the sight of Him who looks not merely at the amount given,
but at the
not merely
at the quantity
all
His doctrinal
little
to forget this
The proof of
good in
this is to
The proof
all
is to
small incomes of
The proof
is
to
be
270
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
lists
of self-complacent guinea
of
whom many
of pounds.
The
matters which
religion,
is
one of
the crying sins of the day, and one of the worst signs of the times.
The
in twenty, probably,
21.)
amend
it.
Let us pray
hearts,
Him
stir
to
awake men's
and
up a
Above
There
all, let
us each do our
own
and gladly
will
to
while
we
can.
be no giving when
we
are dead.
Let us give
as those
us.
who remember
still
He
sees exactly
is left
what each
gives,
and knows
us give
exactly
how much
body and
Let us
behind.
Above
all, let
who gave
Freely
Himself,
on the
cross.
we have
received.
freely give.*
* It is probable, according to Arias Montanus and Brenius, that the words "all her living," mean "all her daily income," and not all her property.
It may be well to remark in this connection, that nothing can be more absurd than to say, as some do, that they contribute "their mite" to an object, when they probably contribute some trifling sum which they do not miss, and which bears not the most remote proportion to the widow's scale of liberality. A man contributes "his mite" when he contributes half his dally income, and
not
till
then.
MARK, CHAP.
XIII.
271
MARK
1
Xin. 18.
5
as he went out of the temple, one of his disciples saith unto mm, Master, see what manner of stones
And
any
man
de-
6 For
saying, I
many.
shall hear of wars and rumours of wars, be ye not troubled for such things must needs be; but the end shall not be yet. 8 For nation shall rise against nation, and kingdom against kingdom: and there shall be earthquakes in divers places, and there shall be famines and troubles: these are the beginnings
And when ye
of sorrows.
The
chapter
is
full of
prophecy,
fulfilled,
and part
re-
mains
to
be accomplished.
of this prophecy.
Two
One
subject
the
destruction
of
The
other
is
live.
The
destruction of Jerusalem
after our
is
of Christ
an
it
event which
we may
1^72
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
No
The
history ought to
receive so
much
of the
The march
trifles
of
in
final
May we remember
!
" Blessed
is
he
i.
3.)
The
first
Lord
concerning
The
disciples,
" See," they said, " what manner what buildings are here " * They re!
To
interpret that
coining of the
Roman army
me
and two tremendous tribulations which would fall especially on the Jews, and of His own second coming as an event which would immediately follow the second siege, makes the whole chapter plain and intelligible. All these events ought to be deeply interesting to believers; and would be especially so to Jewish believers, like the apostles, in whose time the temple was yet standing, the Jewish dispensation not yet put aside, and Jerusalem not yet destroyed.
* It may be well to remark that the temple here spoken of, was, in a certain sense, the third temple in order which had been built at Jerusalem. The first was built by Solomon, and destroyed by
MARK, CHAP.
XIII.
273
up
inquisitive
thoughts
in
lips.
their
minds.
No word
He
workman-
Him.
He
appears
which
it
belonged.
He
great buildings ?
There
not be
one stone
upon
members.
The
candlestick,
and the
Much
less,
may we
suppose, can
He
honoured in
this.
it.
"We
shall
do well to remember
We
are
who
"We
ecclesiastical building
fine music
and gorgeously-
And
by Ezra and Nehemiah. Nebuchadnezzar. The third, if it may be so called, was enlarged and almost re-buUt, The about the time of our Lord Jesus Christ's birth, by Herod. enormous size of the stones used in building it, and the general magnificence of the whole fabric, are attested not only by Josephus, but by heathen writers.
built
274
yet there
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
may be no
religion at
to
all.
It
may
be
all
form,
the senses.
There
may be
is
nothing
to cure the
It
may
not
God
The
ministers
may
perhaps be utterly
may
be dead
and
sins.
We
is
more honourable
in
His eyes
St. Peter's at
Rome.
There
is
is
handsome.
There
no true
having a
dirty,
all
"Let
But
we make
radically defec-
It has no glory if
things, the
is
God
is
not there.
With these
two
is
preached,
consecrated by
own presence, and the Holy Spirit's own blessing. The second thing that demands our attention in these verses, is the remarkable manner in which our Lord comChrist's
this chapter.
MARK, CHAP.
XIII.
275
"We
doubt by His warning prediction about the temple, ap" Tell us," they plied to Him for further information.
said,
and what
shall
be
the sign
when
all
"
He
would
So far from
He
teUs
lest
them
Many
So
far
shall
come
my
name,
am
Christ."
a general reign of peace and quietness, He teUs them to " Nation shall rise against prepare for wars and troubles.
nation,
There
this
shall be
and troubles
There
is
opening
His Church
is
expect between
It looks as if it
were
of His apostles, but of the vast body of professing Christians in every age.
that
man
is
It looks as if our Lord knew well always catching at the idea of a " good time
if
coming," and as
He
He
returns.
It
it is
may not
in strict
tidings.
But
we
276
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
before, prophesied of war,
and of
evil,
and of pestilence.
sieth of peace,
when
to
be
much
many
of
have indulged.
Let us not be
carried
common
idea,
with the
It
wiU not be
There
is
such expectations.
Let us
for
wars.
Let us cease
to expect all
men
to
be made holy by
any
existing instrumentality,
ing, or
live in a
day of
election,
There
It
will be
no universal holiness
Satan
bound.
may
cost us
is
much
these.
But there
whose
earth,
true,
show that these opinions are and that while " Many are called, few are chosen."
state does not
It
may
is
who
right
and who
is
wrong.
wait patiently.
and pray.
But
not surprise us
we
find our
MARK, CHAP,
Lord's word strictly true
leadeth unto
V. 14.)
life,
:
XIII.
277
is
" NarroTv
the
way
which,
MARK
:
XIII. 9-13.
ever shall be given you in that hour, that speak ye for it is not ye that speak, but the Holy Ghost. 12 Now the brother shall betray the brother to death, and the father the son and children shall rise up against their parents, and shall cause them to be put to death. 13 And ye shall be hated of all men for my name's sake but he that shall endure unto the end, the same shall be saved.
:
9 But take heed to yourselves for they shall deliver you up to councils and in the synagogues ye shall be beaten and ye shall be brought before rulers and kings for my sake, for a testimony against them. 10 And the Gospel must first be published among all nations. 11 But when they shall lead you, and deliver you up, take no thought beforehand what ye shall speak, neither do ye premeditate but whatso:
'
Christ's
They
all
any sweet,
seldom
The
and has
We may remark
"We may
considering.
this
we
are
now
We
first
may
place,
note
it
in the few
verses
Lord
all
bids
Sis people
His
first
Trouble, no doubt,
is
the portion of
It
came
in with
to trouble as the
(Job
But
278
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
-warning.
world.
trouble
from
the
and kings."
They They
wUl
find their
ways and
them no
On
own
relations.
" Brother shall betray brother to death, and the father the
Their
own
flesh
and blood
We
shall
it
no strange thing
things.
if
some
bitter
Our
lot,
no doubt,
is
The
places.
We
have no reason
if
to
be afraid of death or
But, for
all that,
imprisonment,
we
serve Christ.
to
we
we
We
must be content
We must even
is
The
not ceased.
" The natural man receive th not the things of the Spirit of God." They that are " bom after the flesh " will persecute those that are
"bom
(1 Cor.
ii.
MARK, CHAP.
14.
XIII.
279
life
Gal.
iv.
29.)
The utmost
consistency of
will
not prevent
it.
surprised to find
we are converted, we must never be that we are hated for Christ's sake.
If
place, ichat rich encourage-
Lord Jesus
thing,
holds out to
His persecuted
people.
He
sets before
them three
For one
In
He
tells
first
must
be,
and
it
shall
spite of
men and
devils,
of Christ shall be told in every part of the world. gates of hell shall not prevail against
persecution, imprisonment,
it.
The
be
Notwithstanding
shall
wanting a succession of
faithful
shall proclaim
Few may
believe
them.
sin.
Many
of their hearers
may
continue hardened in
But nothing
The word
it
may
be imprisoned and
thing, our
Tim.
ii.
9.)
For another
Lord
tells us,
that those
who
them
in
making
their defence.
They
shall
As
all
it
Roman
ciples.
councils, so shall it
be with
true-hearted dis-
histories of
His word.
For another
thing, our
Lord
tells
280
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
final
salvation.
"He
shall
that
Not one
of those
who endure
in
tears,
is
tribulation
miss
his reward.
they shall
reap
in joy.
affliction,
which
aU true-hearted servants
of
Christ.
Persecuted,
vexed, and
mocked
Beset, perplexed,
Though
cast
not be destroyed.
patience.
souls
in
The end
them
is
certain, fixed,
and
sure.
The kingdoms
of this
And when
who
so
* There is a promise in the passage now expounded which is often much perveited. I allude to the implied promise contained in the words, " Take no thought beforehand what ye shall speak, neither do ye premeditate but whatsoever shall be given you in that time, that speak ye."
The pervei"sion I mean, consists in supposing that this passage warrants ministers in getting up to preach unprepared every Sunday, and in expecting special help of the Holy Ghost in addressing regular congi-egations, when they have neither meditated, read, nor taken pains about their subject.
moment's reflection must show any reader, that such an application of the passage before us is utterly imjustifiable. The passage has no reference whatever to the regular Sabbath sermon
MARK, CHAP.
XIII.
281
MAKE
Xni. 1423.
19
tion,
14 But when ye shall see the abomination of desolation, spoken of by Daniel the prophet, standing where it ought not, (let him that readeth understand,) then let them that be in Judsea flee to the mountains 15 And let him that is on the housetop not go down into the house, neither enter therein, to take any thing out of his house 16 And let him that is in the field not turn back again for to take up his garment. 17 But woe to them that are with child, and to them that give suck in those days 18 And pray ye that your flight be not in the winter.
Form those days shall be afflicsuch as was not from the begin-
ning of the creation which God created unto this time, neither shall be. 20 And except that the Lord had shortened those days, no flesh should be saved but for the elect's sake, whom he hath chosen, he hath shortened the days. 21 And then if any man shall say to you, Lo, here is Christ or, lo, he
:
is
there believe him not 22 For false Chiists and false pro;
phets shall rise, and shall shew signs and wonders, to seduce, if it were possible, even the elect. 23 But take ve heed behold, I have
;
foretold
you
all things.
We
means
provide for
The
language of our Lord Jesus Christ on the subject is clear and unmistakeable " Let them that be in Judaea flee
:
to the
mountains
let
him
:
that
let
is
on the house-top
that
is
is
him
in the field
^pray
ye that your
said to
flight
be not in
Not a word
make
us suppose
is tin-
worthy of a Christian.
the passage before us,
in
to
the
of a minister, and only holds out the promise of special help in special times of need.
would be well for the Church if this was more remembered it is. At present it may be feared this promise is not unfrequently made an excuse for ministerial idleness, and undigested sennons. Men seem to forget, when they enter the pulpit, that what costs nothing is worth nothing, and that the " foolishness of preaching" andfooUsh preaching, ai'e widely different things.
It
than
282
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
lesson
Is
The
"usefulaess.
means, because he
life,
come.
believer
God will
and provide
means and the common sense which God has given him,
well as other people.
special help of his
need.
ful
means.
profess to trust
sit
still
and do nothing,
The word
on
of
God
this subject, to
which we
The conduct
Esau,
is
of Jacob,
when he went
to
He
first
arranged present.
of Hezekiah,
is
(Gen. xxxii. 9 The conduct 13.) when Sennacherib came against Jerusalem, another case. "With us," he tells the people, "is
And
yet,
city,
same time, he
darts
St.
built
and made
conduct of
and
is
shields.
The
read
life.
Paul
another case.
Frequently
we
Once we
see
him
by a
basket.
the walls of
Damascus
on
com
ship,
apostle's faith
confidence.
We
MARK, CHAP.
XIII.
283
Master.
know his courage and reliance on his we see that even he never despised
Let us not be ashamed
to do likewise.
And
yet
let
us bear in mind.
Let us not
rest
God.
To
i
means
diligently,
is
in the
hand
of Grod,
the
mark
at
ought
to aim.
We
He
;
says
whom He
hath chosen.
He hath shortened
and wonders,
to
the days."
He
it
show
signs
were
It
is
in the Bible,
that
God has an
"
They
are
whom
He
to us, to deliver
those
whom
vessels
He
to bring
by Christ
honour."
to everlasting salvation, as
made
to
only, belong
sanctification,
and
Spirit in
calling.
due season."
They
are
made
sons
of
God by
adoption.
284
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
are
They
and
made
like the
They walk
good works,
felicity."
Gospel.
are the
by God's mercy, attain to everlasting To them belong the precious promises of the They are the bride, the Lamb's wife. They
is
Christ's body.
They
world.
are those
whom God
princes,
Kings,
are
all
These
pride of
The
man may
The
ous.
gainsaid.
subject of election
Unquestionably
it
and abused.
proper cautions,
are.
For one
thing,
we must never
soul.
own
on them
strive, to labour.
seventeenth
article,
God
is to
be followed,
For another
thing
we have
unless
to do, is to repent
"We have
tion,
no right to take
we can show
MARK, CHAP.
and
faith.
XIII.
285
troubling ourselves
are elect or not,
We
still,
we
John
23.)
Let us cease
off
to do evil.
sin.
Let us learn
to
do well.
Let us break
from
Let
God in prayer. So doing, we shall soon know and feel whether we are God's To use the words of an old divine, we must begin at elect. the grammar school of repentance and faith, before we go to It was when Paul remembered the university of election.
Let us draw near
to
"I
know your
election of
God."*
(1 Thess.
i.
4.)
MAKK
XIII. 2431.
24 But in those days, after that tribulation, the sun shall be darkened, and the moon shall not give her light, 25 And the stars of heaven shall fall, and the powers that are in heaven
shall be shaken. 26 And then shall they see the
28
tree
;
Now learn a parable of the fig When her branch is yet tender,
leaves,
ye know
Son
of man coming in the clouds with great power and glory. 27 And then shall he send his an^ gels, and shall gather together his elect from the four winds, from the uttermost part of the earth to the uttermost part of heaven.
summer is near 29 So ye ia like manner, when ye shall see these things come to pass, know that it is nigh, even at the doors, 30 Verily I say unto you, that this generation shall not pass, till all these things be done. 31 Heaven and earth shall pass away but my words shall not pass
:
away.
* The meaning of the " abomination of desolation," in this passage, has always perplexed the commentators. The most common view undoubtedly is, that it signifies the Eoman armies, who executed God's judgment on the Jewish nation.
fulfils
be questioned whether this interpretation completely the prophecy. I venttu-e, though with much diffidence, to suggest that a more complete and literal accomplishment yet remains to come. The remarkable words of St. Paul to the Thessalonians, appear to me scarcely to have received yet a com" He, as God, sitteth in the temple of God, shewplete fulfilment ing himself that he is God." (2 Thess. ti. 4.) I own that it seems to me by no means improbable that a personal anti-christ, yet to
It
;
may
286
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
The events described in it are all They may possibly take place in our yet to take place. own day. The passage therefore is one which we ought
is
entirely unfulfilled.
interest.
Let us observe,
will attend our
world.
and
stars,
of the universe at the close of the present dispensation. It reminds us of the apostle Peter's words, "the heavens
shall
pass
noise,
(2 Pet.
10.)
At such
all
a time as
this,
known
to pro-
the Son of
glory."
Man
The second
the
first.
unHke
infant,
in weakness, a tender
He
and
first
feared,
all
He came
the
time to
suffer,
to
bear our
sins,
to
be reckoned a
curse,
slain.
to
He
to reign,
to
put
may prove the final accomplishment of these words. I desire to avoid dogmatism on the subject. I only suggest it as a possible and probable thing.
MARK, CHAP.
XIII.
287
doms
of
tliis
to rule
to
them
for
with righteousness,
evermore.
to
judge
all
men, and
Kve
How vast the difference How mighty the contrast How startling the comparison between the second advent How solemn the thoughts that the suband the first
!
!
ject
ought
to stir
up in our minds
Here
are comfortable
be here.
They
have sown.
They
reward
have
endured
sake.
They
shall
exchange their
Here
Christ's foes.
whom
they
have
That very
and
Christ,
have refused
to beHeve, shall
and
helpless, hopeless,
May we
!
His
He
shall send
His
elect
The safety of the Lord's people shall be provided for, when judgment falls upon the earth. He will do nothing tiU He has placed them beyond the reach of harm. The The flood did not begia till Noah was safe in the ark. fire did not fall on Sodom till Lot was safe within the The wrath of God on unbeHevers shall walls of Zoar.
not be
let loose till
The
true Christian
may
288
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
However
earth, his
no harm comes
him.
He
shall
all his
brethren
tongue.
no more.
ii.
The
great gathering
is
yet to come.
(2 Thess.
1.)
place,
how important
it is to
Our Lord
bids
His
its
Just as
budding leaves
ment
It
of events in the world around us, should teach us nigh, even at the doors."
becomes
all
true
Christians to
observe carefully
It
it.
own
day.
is
not only a
duty to do
this,
Our Lord
was passing
They did not see that away from Judah, and the
out.
Let us beware of
fall-
Let us rather open our eyes, and Let us mark the dry-
work
in the world.
rise of
new and
What
of the fig-tree ?
out,
world
is
wearing
It needs its
MARK, CHAP.
rightful king,
XIII.
289
even Jesns.
May we
(Rev. xvi.
Let us observe,
how
carefully our
Lord
He
speaks as though
He
He
warns us emphati-
but
my
We
any prophecy
not say,
again ?
improbable or unlikely to be
contrary to past experience.
is
fulfilled,
merely because
it is
Let us
""Where
Where
is
the likelihood
world being
burned up?"
We
have nothing
?
:
do with "likely or
is,
"what
The words
of St. Peter
days
is
where
walking after their own lusts, saying, the promise of His coming ? " (2 Pet. iii. 3, 4.)
scoffers,
thought,
what we should have we had lived on earth two thousand years ago. Should we have thought it more probable that the Son of God would come on earth as a poor man and die, or that He would come on earth as a King and reign ? Should we not have said at once, that if He came at all, He would come to reign and not to die ? Yet we know that He did come as "a man of sorr jws," and died on the Then let us not doubt that He will come the cross.
if
290
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
its predictions.
it
Above
its
an abiding sense of
to
truth,
like
meet
it,
their master.
of
or
however soon, we
MARK
XIII. 3237.
32 But of that day and that hour knoweth no man, no, not the angels which are in heaven, neither the Son, but the Father. 33 Take ye heed, watch and pray: for ye know not when the time la. 34 For the Son of man is as a man taking a far journey, who left his house, and gave authority to his servants, and to every man his work, and
commanded the porter to watch. 35 Watch ye therefore for ye know not when the master of the house Cometh, at even, or at midnight, or at the cockcrowing, or in the morning: 36 Lest coming suddenly he find
:
you sleeping. 37 And what I say unto you I say unto all, Watch.
These
They ought
to
form
* I am aware that some interpreters of the passage now expounded, explain its language very differently from myself Many regard the " sun, moon, and stars" as emblems of kings and rulers,
" coming of the Son of Man," as a general expression signifying any great exhibition of divine power, and the "sending forth of His angels," as nothing more than the sending of ministers and messengers of the Gospel to gather together the people of
the
God.
I will only say that I can see no gi'ound or waiTant for such They appeal* to me to be a dangerous taminterpretations. pering with the plain literal meaning of Scri])ture, and to give a great handle to the Arian, and Socinian, and the Jew, in the arguments that they respectively bring fonvai'd in support of their own peculiar views.
word "generation"
decided opinion, that the I take this opportunity of expressing in the verse, "this generation shall not pass away," can only mean " this nation or people, the Jewish nation,
my
The view that it means the generation of men which is alive now while I am speaking," would make our Lord to say tliat which
''
MARK, CHAP.
a personal application of
consciences.
XIII.
291
our
purposely/ withheld
from His church. The event is certain. The precise day and hour are not revealed. "Of that day and hour knoweth no man, no, not the angels which are in
heaven."*
was not
true.
fulfilled
when the generation to which He spoke had passed away. The view that it means " the same generation which is alive when these things begin, shall also see them accomplished,"
appears to
natiu-al
is
me
meaning made.
untenable for one simple reason. It is not the of the Greek words, from which our translation
* There is undoubtedly some difficulty in the words of our Lord, that day and hour knoweth no man, no, not the angels which are in heaven, neither the Son." The question has often been raised, "How can the Lord Jesus be ignorant of anything, since He is very God, and says Himself, "I and my Father are one?" How can the expression be reconciled with the saying, In Him are hid all the treasures of wisdom and knowledge ?' " (Col. 2, 3.)
"Of
'
The answer to these questions is to be found in our deep ignorance of the gi'eat mystery of the union of two natures in one Pei'son. That our Lord Jesus Christ was at the same time perfect God, and perfect man we know. That these two distinct natures were both found together in His Person, we also know. But how, and in what way, and to what extent the divine nature did not always operate in Him so as to overshadow the human nature, J believe it to be impossible for mortal man to explain. Enough JPor us to know that we sometimes see in our Lord's words and actions, " " the man Christ Jesus," and sometimes see the God over all
But though we
can only
not explain.
We
see cleai-ly, and admu-e, we cansay, in the present instance, that our
Lord
sjiake as a
as God.
Bullinger, in an able note on the subject, gives an interesting quotation from CyrU, of which the following passage is a portion
" Just as the
thirst,
sufferings of this kind, so also, as man, He is ignorant of " that great day." For He sometimes speaks as God, and sometimes as man, in order that He may show Himself to be both very
and other
292
There
silence.
is
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
deep wisdom and mercy in this intentional
despondency.
What
if it
had known
for certain
The
hearts of
men
like Athanasius,
them,
if
to take the
kingdom.
^TN^hat
a quick-
God
They have
This
come suddenly
to take account of
His servants.
There
is
said to
Our
friend
Lazanis sleepeth," when no one had told Him. As man He asked the sister of Lazarus, when He came to them at the end of His jonmey, " Where have ye laid him?" He who, when far off, knew that Lazarus was dead, how could He be ignorant, when It is jiresent, of the place where the body of Lazanis was? utterly improbable that He should have known the one thing, and been ignorant of the other. But the tinth is, that He knew both Therefore, in the as God, while He was ignorant of both as man. same way. He both knew not and yet knew "that day and that hour." As man He knew not. As God He knew."
It is a sensible
of texts like this, is the sure way to revive old heresies, and to bring into doubt, sometimes the divine, and sometimes the human nature of Christ.
literal interpretation
MARK, CHAP.
must not be overlooked.
XIII.
293
We must
This
is
unhappily,
many
There
is
a wide dispositive
tinction to be
But
studying prophecy,
we can have no
:
plainer
"
Ye
do well
words in Revelation
Peter
i.
"Blessed
is
he that readeth."
(2
19. Rev.
i.
3.)
We learn,
them
plainly that
glory.
that the precise hour and date of that coining are not
What
mind
In what
position of
They
are to watch.
They
are to pray.
They
We
guard.
state,
are to watch.
We
always on our
We
We
are
to
beware of anything
dulness,
of
294
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
"Let
let
We are to pray.
communion and
no strangeness
to
"We are
in
to
"We are
that so
to allow
come
be ready at any
over,
we
are to
coming, that
moment to to face. Moremake special prayer about the Lord's we may be " found in peace, without spot
at
we may
no time be
(2 Peter
14.
Luke
xxi. 34.)
we
are to work.
"We are
to realize that
we
who has
to
given to
every
man
his work,
be done.
We
There
is
one to do.
light,
We
to
be the
our
own
times,
to
be faithful
Him
idle
by conscien-
Our
great desire
must be
to
be found not
and
sleeping,
to
They ought
to stir
up
in the
*"Be doing something," says Jerome, "that the devil may always find you engaged." It was a common saying of Calvin, towards the end of his life, when his fi-iends would have had him do less work, foi' his health's sake, " would you have my blaster find
me
idle ?
"
MARK, CHAP.
XIV.
295'
Are we looking
for
His appearing
consideration.
? Do we long Can we say with, sincerity, Come, Do we live as if we expected Christ to These are questions which demand serious May we give them the attention which
for
they deserve
to neglect
He
requires
He
merchant his
asks
is
All
He
that
should
man
as believing people,
Kve
as people
who know
that
"without holiness no
So
living,
we we
are ready to
are neither
Not living in
this
way,
for death,
to
To
be
the
live in this
way
is
truly prepared
earth.
for
anything that
words of
Watch
MARK
XIV. 19.
house of Simon the leper, as he sat at meat, there came a woman having an alabaster box of ointment of spikenard very precious and she brake the box, and poured it on his head. 4 And there were some that had indignation within themselves, and said. Why was this waste of the oint;
1 After two days was tJie feast of the Passover, and of unleavened bread and the Chief Priests and the Scribes sought how they might take him by craft, and put him to death. 2 But they said, Not on the feast day, lest there be an uproar of tlie
:
people.
And
ment made
296
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
I
5 For it might have been sold for more than thr^e hundred pence, and have been given to the poor. And
they murmured against her. 6 And Jesus said, Let her alone why trouble ye her she hath wrought a good work on me. 7 For ye have the poor with you always, and whensoever ye will ye may "do them good but me ye have
;
.
not always, 8 She hath done what she could she is come aforehand to anoint my body to the burying. 9 Verily I say unto vou, Wheresoever this Gospel shall be preached thoughout the whole world, this also that she hath done shall be spoken of
:
'
for a
memorial of her.
St.
Mark's Gospel,
we have
teacher.
Hitherto
ings.
"We have now to see Him as our High Priest. we have had to consider His miracles and say"We have now to consider His vicarious sacrifice
cross.
first
on the
Let us
God can
disapto
Mis
oim
It
glory.
is
intend to
public transaction.
" They
sought to take
Him by
craft."
"They
said,
not on the
In
do
was
to
nothing
had returned to their own homes. The overruHng providence of God completely defeated this politic design. The betrayal of our Lord took place
passover- worshippers
at
an
earlier time
Lord took place on the very day when Jerusalem was most full of people, and the passover feast
of our
The death
was
at its height.
wicked
men was
They thought
297
kingdom
it.
and
were helping to
establish
They thought
have made
Him
vile
and
and in
and
reality they
made
were
Him
glorious.
They thought
to
;
have put
Him
to death
privily,
instead, they
compelled to crucify
nation of the Jews.
disciples,
Him
publicly,
They thought
and stopped
their teaching
and
instead, they
supplied
them with a
So easy
is it for
God
to cause the
wrath of
man
to praise
Him. (Psalm
There
live
is
Ixxvi. 10.)
all this for
comfort in
true Christians.
to
They
and
fro
in a troubled world,
Let them
rest
themgood
Let them
all
things
them
Father's glory.
of the
second Psalm
"The
and the
And
shall
yet
goes on,
the
"He
shall
laugh
Lord
It
to
verses,
hoio
good
We
work
of a certain
woman,
in pour-
*The question has often been raised, whetlier there were one, two, or three women who anointed our Lord diu-ing His earthly
298
She did
it,
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
no doubt,
o"v\ti
as a
mark
of honour
and
respect,
Him.
Yet
Their cold
"waste."
selves."
The
spirit of these
un-
Theophylact
is
For
opinion
Luke
appeal's first in order. The city in which this anointing took place does not appear to be Bethany. The woman is spoken of as having been " a sinner." The house is described as that of a Pharisee. The anointing was of our Lord's "feet," and not of His " head."
There is strong internal evidence that the whole transaction took place at a comparatively early period of om* Lord's ministry. All these points should be noticed.
The anointing described by St. John appeai-s next in order. we are distinctly told, was "six days" before the passover. The person who anointed our Lord was Maiy, the sister of Lazanis. The part of Him anointed was again His " feet," and not His
2.
This,
" head."
3.
to
be noticed.
The anointing described by St. Matthew and St. Mark comes third in order. This, we are told, was only "two days" before the feast of the passover. In this case we are not told the name of the woman who anointed our Lord. But we are told that the ointment was poured on His "head." The question of course occurs to our minds " Is it likely and
:
probable that this event would take place no less than three times?" In reply to tbat it may be fairly said, that to anoint a person as a mark of honour and respect, was far more common in our Lord's time than we in England suppose and that anointing was a far more frequent practice than we in this climate can imagine. And it seems perfectly possible that the same thing may have happened
;
three times.
The main difficulty, of course, is the close similarity of the language used at the anointing described by John, and at that described by Matthew and Mark. This can only be explained by supposing that our Lord twice said the same things.
who decry
what they
"extremes" in
religion,
If a
man
and
do
If he gives himself up
politics,
to the service of
fault.
money, pleasure, or
the same
they find no
But
if!
man
is
"He
is
"He
a fanatic."
righteous
"He is out of his mind." "He is an enthusiast." "He is over-much." "He is an extreme man." In
beside himself."
as " waste."
us, if
we hear
them;
made
we
Let
They show
plainly that
A cold heart
for
If a
man
He
""what shall I
cxvi.
afiec-
He
money,
will
on the things of
this world.
He
not be
afraid of wasting
them on
his Saviour.
He
will fear
politics, or
much
for
last place,
how
highly our
Lord
300
EXPOSITORY THOL'GHTS.
to
Himself.
Nohere
we
on any person, as
this
woman
Three
For one
Lord
says,
"Why trouble ye
A
hard
all
who
it
answer
^What
What
!
None none
They
and
rance,
For another
good work."
thing, our
Lord
says,
How great
and marvellous
!
that praise,
often given
Money is
who
loves
For another
thing,
No
word
of
commendation
Thousands
and
and are
lost eternally,
who
"I
so,
I do
all
I can."
And
Hke
yet in saying
lie as
Ananias
be found
and Sapphira.
this
Few,
may
be feared, are
to
woman, and
really deserve to
have
it
said of
self- application.
301
and
all
we have we have,
Our
may be
let us,
lowly,
But
like her,
things yet to
day of judgment.
Let us
when
day plead
world.
for all
upon
us,
and that
we do
is
Let
more
men
The
we
suffer in this
world from
unkind tongues.
MARK
XIV. 1016.
you a man bearing a pitcher of water
follow him. 14 And wheresoever he shall go in, say ye to the goodman of the house, The'Master saith. Where is the guestchamber, where I shall eat the Passover with my disciples } 15 And he will shew you a large upper room furnished and prepared : there make ready for us. 16 And his disciples went forth, and came into the city, and found as
10 And Judas Iscariot, one of the twelve, went unto the Chief Priests, to betray him unto them.
11 And when they heard it, they were glad, and promised to give him money. And he sought how he might conveniently betray him. 12 And the first day of unleavened
bread, when they killed the Passover, his disciples said unto him, Where wUt thou that we go and prepare that thou mayest eat the Passover 13 And he sendeth forth two of his
.'
and saith unto them, Go ye into the city, and there shall meet
disciples,
Ix these
verses, St.
Mark
tells
us
how
came
to
own twelve
802
disciples.
EXPOSITORY THOrCHTS.
The
false apostle,
Judas
Iscariot,
betrayed
Him.
We
It
is
ought to mark,
firstly,
in this passage, to
what
lengths a
man may
impossible to conceive a
more
striking proof of
Iscariot.
man who
Hke a
that
man was
to
Judas.
Himself
be an apostle.
kingdom
of God,
and
to
work miracles
name.
He was
regarded by
all
He was
And
man
fall,
such an apostacy,
fair beginning,
such a
total
And how
can this
amazing
is
conduct of Judas be
accounted for ?
There
" The love of money " was the cause of this unhappy
man's
ruin.
soul.
No
303
The
xii.
Holy Ghost
6.)
declares plainly
"he was a
thief."
(John
And
an eternal
love of
money
is
this
church-member-ship,
useless things,
if
They
and a tinkling
cymbal,
the new.
all,
we have not put off the old man, and put on They wiU not deliver us from hell. ^Above
let
covetousness."
(Luke
xii.
15.)
It
is
may
to
Let us pray
xiii. 6.)
The
possession of
money
is
who have
afraid of
The
more
We
over
for a
this
passage,
the
and
the
We cannot doubt
was not by chance, but by God's providential appointment, that our Lord was crucified in
that
it
moment
the passover week, and on the very day that the passover
lamb was
slain.
It
was meant
to
304
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
Him
as the true
Lamb
of God.
It
was meant
to bring to their
Every
no doubt, was
one great sacrinone, certainly,
sacrifice,
Jew onward
ofi'ered.
to the
which Christ
But
It
was
so striking a figure
was preeminently
24.)
so full of
meanas the
ceremonies,
of the marvellous
the first-born ?
No
doubt
it did.
But
sin,
was
also
meant
which was
to
No
far
doubt
it did.
But
it
was
also
meant
to teach
him the
be the
life
of the world.
houses,
No
far
doubt
it did.
But
it
was
also
meant
from
to
to
of guilt,
safe
come.
of his fore-
305
were
safe
from
tlie
when he slew
slain
lamb
No
doubt
it
did.
But
it
was meant
all
to
who
into
would receive
actually feed
their hearts.
benefit
upon
Him by
and receive
Him
Let us
We
time appointed by
God
for our
Lord Jesus
on the
cross.
It
happened
when
the
mind
of all Israel
to the deliverance
wondrous night,
when it took place. The lamb slain and eaten by every member if the family, the destroying angel, the safety
blessed
Lord was
slain.
It
would be
and open
tiU the
many eyes.
last day.
thinking,
never
know
Let
it
be a
rule with
us,
in
attention.
They
The
altar,
the
scape-goat,
the
daily bumt-ofiering,
finger-posts point-
all so
many
show
their
own
596
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
to their
MAEK
XIV. 1725.
if
17 And in the evening he cometh with the twelve. 18 And as they sat and did eat, Jesus said. Verily I say unto you. One of you which eateth with me shall betray me. 19 ^nd they began to be sorrowful, and to say unto him one by one, Is it I } and another said, Is it I } 20 And he answered and said unto them. It is one of the twelve that dippeth with me in the dish. 21 The Son of man indeed goeth, but woe to tis it is written of him
:
And as they did eat, Jesus took bread, and blessed, and brake it, and gave to them, and said, Take, eat this is mv body. 23 And he took the cup, and when he had given thanks, he gave it to them and they all drank of it. 24 And he said unto them, This is my blood of the new testament, which
:
that
man by whom
!
betrayed
shed for many. 25 Verily I say unto you, I will drink no more of the fruit of the vine, until that day that I drink it new in the kingdom of God.
is
may be well to observe in tliis connection, that it admits of question, whether the common view of the word "passover" At any rate, the following passage from Bishop is the correct one. Lowth on Isaiah xxxi. 5. deserves careful consideration. He says:
*It
much
notion of God's passing over the houses of the that in going through the land of Egypt to smite the first-bom, seeing the blood on the door of the houses of the Israelites, He passed over, or skipped those houses, and forbore to smite them. But that this is not the time notion of the thing, will be plain from considering the words of the sacred historian, where he describes very explicitly the action For Jehovah will pass through to smite the Egyptians ; and when He seeth the blood on the lintels and on the two side posts, Jehovah tcill spring foncard over or before the door, and will not suffer the destroyer to come Here are manifestly into your houses to smite you.' Exod. xii. 23. two distinct agents, with which the notion of passing over is not consistent; for that supposes but one agent. The two agents are, the destroying angel passing through to smite every house, and Jehovah the protector, keeping pace with him, who seeing the door of the Israelites marked with blood, leaps foi-ward, tlu'ows Himself with a sudden motion in the way, opposes the destroying angel, and protects and saves that house against him, nor suffers him to smite it." The words of Isaiah xxxi. 5. ought to be studied attentively, in order to understand the fitness and propriety of this
Israelites
is,
: '
"The common
interpretation.
307
These
tion
of
Lord's Supper.
The
simplicity
of
the
it
Well would
have been
for the
Church,
if
men had
sacrament
It
is
has been
meaning, in
many
parts of Christen-
dom,
is
utterly
unknown.
and
to our
own
Supper.
We
"One
with
me
shall betray
me."
He meant
:
up
in the
miuds of His
disciples,
so touchingly recorded
"They began
to
and another
drawing near
said.
Is
it
I ?"
diligent self-inquiry.
The
we
receive
it.
The
medi-
eat,
power
to do
wills.
blessing
by virtue of the
miniflter's consecration, if
we do
308
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
faith.
To
some
must do good to
they receive
is
rise to gross
and wicked
superstition.
The
state
ourselves,
We ought to
"ex-
^whether we and
we
new life,
whether we have a
Christ,
men."
If our
we
may
this
More than
Less
God
this
than
I
us.
to ourselves in the
it
on either
side.
On
away
we
unfitness.
I
i
As long as we so stay away, we are disobeying a plain command of Christ, and are living in sin. ^But, on the other hand, we are not to go to the Lord's table as a mere form, and without thought. As long as we receive the sacrament in that state of mind, we derive no good
from
it,
It is
is
an
to be
it
It
is
a no
is
less
most provoking
God.
The only
and
to
MARK, CHAP.
live the life of faith in
XIV.
309
Him.
Then we
may draw
near
verses,
is to
remind
is
on the
cross.
The bread
The wine The
is
to cleanse us
from aU
sin.
atone-
ment and
propitiation
effected
by His
The
left
false doctrine
which some
who
us an example
how
to die,
is
of great im-
portance.
drawing near
to the
It will
remind us how
sinful
sin for
must
it.
sins
are great, a great price has been paid for our redemption.
^Not least,
it
The bread
our Hves.
and wine
will
to glorify
Him in
May
we
we
experience, whenever
310
Finally,
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS,
we
Supper
is
intended to
convey,
and
the persons
to expect
them.
We may gather
commands us
to
this lesson
significant actions
this sacrament. to
Our Lord
"drink" wine.
Now
The
and
is
to be strengthened
The
we
are
meant
is
to
draw,
appointed for
who ought
grace.
who
are lively,
real Christians.
means of
visible
them
to rest in Christ
entirely.
Him more
The
and
aid, quicken,
A right view of
these latter days.
utmost moment in
that there
is
and drink-
man
a different interest in
gives.
on the
cross
Faith
is
and confirm
its
faith,
or supply
absence.
Let
never be forgotten.
Error on
to
this point is a
most
fatal delusion,
and leads
many
superstitions.
Let
it
311
if
we
do not receive
supper
those
is
it
faith.
The Lord's
who come to it unconverted and unjustified, will go away no better than they came, but rather worse. It
an ordinance
for believers,
is
and not
for imbelievers,
and not
It
is
meant
to
sustain
life,
to
strengthen and
but not
to
sow or plant
alive unto
it.
and never be
Are we
If
God
This
is
we
are, let
thankfully,
table.
If
we do
not go,
we commit a
in sin
great sin.
? If we are, we have no business at the communion. "We are on the broad way that leadeth to destruction. We must
and worldliness
repent.
to Christ
We must
by
faith.
be
bom
again.
We
till
must be joined
then,
we
are
fit
to
be communicants.*
* There are two expressions in the passage now expovinded, which deserve a special notice. One is, the "iruit of the vine." The other is "the kingdom of God."
1. The words, " fruit of the vine," applied by our Lord to the cup of wine which He had just been giving to His disciples, in the institution of the Lord's supper, appear entirely to overthrow the Romish doctrine of transubstantiation. The wine, it appears, did not really and literally become Christ's blood, as the Roman Catholics say. Our Lord Himself speaks of it as the juice of grapes, "the fruit of the vine." It is clear therefore, that when He said of that cup of wine before, " this is my blood," He meant nothing more than this, "this represents is an emblem ot^ my
blood."
2.
The words,
to a time
312
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
MARK
26
XIV. 2631.
though
all shall be offended, yet will not I. 30 And Jesus saith unto him. Verily I say unto thee, That this day, even in this night, before the cock crow twice, thou shalt deny me thrice. 31 But he spake the more vehemently. If I should die with thee, I wUl not den}' thee in any wise. Likewise alBO said they all.
they had sung an hymn, they went out into the mount
of Olives.
And when
27 And Jesus saith unto them, All ye shall be offended because of me this night for it is written, I will
:
smite the shepherd, and the sheep shall be scattered. 28 But after that I am risen, I will go before you into Galilee. 29 But Peter said unto him, Al-
We see in these
plainly
verses,
the
He
He
tells
them
to do.
"All ye shall he
tells
ojQTended because of
me
this night."
Peter in
to
me
thrice."
He
allowed
panions,
them
to
be
knowing
perfectly well
day
do.
He
continually with
with a
in continual remembrance.
state of things yet future, appear to show plainly that He did not consider God's kingdom to have come, when He spoke. Moreover the words have not yet received a fulfilment, as it is not known that our Lord administered the Lord's supper to His disciples after His resurrection. The words therefore are meant to turn our minds towards the time of our Lord's second advent. Then, and not till then, " the kingdom of God" will be fully set up. Then, and not till then, we shall sit down at the marriage supper of the Lamb, and drink the new wine in the kingdom.
and
MARK, CHAP.
XIV.
313
and imperfections.
Him by
faith,
them away.
It
He
is
is
passionate High-priest.
His glory
and
to
cover their
many
He knew what
yet
He He
loved them.
He
weak,
erring,
yet
He
loves them.
has undertaken to
shortcomings, and
all their
will perform.
to pass a charitable
Let us not
them down
we
corruption.
Let us
The
daily
Church of Christ
is little
all,
We
ourselves are
skilful
more or
weak, and
all
need the
There
will be
We see,
inattention.
how much
may
miss hy carelessness
and
plainly of
His resurrection
"After that I
am
risen,
Not one
them up
in his heart.
When
314
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
He
Wlien He was
crucified,
And when He
rose again
it
was
true.
of
it
on their
hearts.
What
How
often
we
How many
!
truths
we
How many we had never read them at all words of wisdom we hear in sermons heedlessly and thoughtlessly, and live on as if we had never heard
than
if
them
The days
come upon
On sick-beds, and
and passages
texts
we prove unarmed and unprein mourning, we see a meaning which we at one time heard
Things flash across our minds
feel
listlessly
and unconcerned.
at such seasons,
and make us
them, and heard them, and seen them, but they made no
impression upon us.
ness, they
were
close at
we never
and
So
xxi. 19.)
and not
doing,
lose
for
want of
care.
we
shall lay
to come,
315
and unheeded.
their Master.
first
And
yet
know
that
"never
man
we "The
We
Truths
many
We
how much
in the
ignorant self-confidence
may
sometimes
he
found
The
not think
it possible that he could ever deny his Lord. " If I should die with thee," he says, " I wiU not deny
And he
they
all."
The
" Likewise
also said
all this
confident boasting
all
come
to ?
the disciples
all
their promises
our feelings
Let us learn
destruction,
xvi. 18.)
and a haughty
is
fall."
(Prov.
There
far
more wickedness
can teU
in
aU our hearts
far
is
than we know.
fall, if
We never
how
we might
no degree
if
There
may
not run,
if
he
he does not
lie
The
seeds
of every wickedness
316
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
he
He
own
heart
is
a fool."
(1 Cor. x.
12.
be, "
Hold
thou
me up and
I shall be safe."
MARK
:
XIV. 3242.
sleeping, and saith unto Peter, Simon, sleepest thou ? couldest not thou watch
82 And they came to a place which was named Gethsemane and he saith
to his disciples, Sit ye here, while I shall pray.
lest
ye enter
33 And he taketh with him Peter and James and John, and began to be sore amazed, and to be very heavy
;
into temptation. The spirit truly is ready, but the flesh is weak.
34 And saith unto them, Mv soul is exceeding sorrowful unto death tarry ye here, and watch. 35 And he went forward a little, and fell on the ground, and prayed that, if it were possible, the hour
39 And again he went away, and prayed, and spake the same words. 4(3 And when he returned, he found them asleep again, (for their eyes were heavy,) neither wist they what to
all
things are possible unto thee take away this cup from me nevertheless not what I will, but what thou wUt. 37 And he cometh, and findeth them
answer him. 41 And he cometh the third time, and saith unto them. Sleep on now, and take ymir rest it is enough, the hour is come behold, the Son of man is betraved into the hands of sinners. 42 Rise up, let us go lo, he that betray eth me is at hand.
:
The
semane
Yet
it
has upon
its
momentous importance.
Let us mark, in the
felt the
first
place,
sin.
burden of a world's
written that
;
He
and
My
soul
is
death,"
fell
that, if it
possible, the
317
was no mere
of death,
It
was a sense
It
upon
Him
in a peculiar way.
sins
and
transgressions
upon Him.
our
He was
griefs
being
"made
He was bearing
being
He came
us
He was
sin."
"made
sin for
felt
Him.
These were
We
It is a subject on
which
The
of, is
careless, light
way
in
which such
like,
and the
men's moral
Let the
effect
recollection of
us.
upon
What-
us never "
make a mock
place,
at sin."
Lord
In the hour of His distress we find Him employing this Twice we are told that when His soul great remedy. was exceeding
sorrowful, "
He
prayed."
We shall never
The
is
first
person to
whom we
complaint
God.
The
first
we
should
make should be
The
318
reply
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
may
The
relief
we
The thing
that tries
may
But the
The advice
afflicted ?
mere
of St.
James
is
striking example
to tJie will
of God.
Deeply as
guilt,
His human
still
nature
felt
He
if it
cup from
me
what I
but what
thou wilt." *
* Men ai'e so apt to nin into error on the subject of the divine and human natm-es in Christ, that the following quotation may be worth reading.
" There are two distinct wills in Christ. But although they be truly distinct and different one from the other, yet they are not contraiy one to the other, but they are subordinate each to other the hvunan will of Christ being always subject to His divine wiU, and most ready to be ordered and ruled by it. Therefore here we see that He doth submit His will, as He was man, to the divine will of God the Father, which divine will of the Father was also This truth we are to hold and maintaia against Christ's own will. those old heretics, which were called Monothelites, because they held there was but one kind of will in Christ, namely His divine will. This heresy sprung up in the Eastern church about 600 years after Christ ; and it did very much molest and trouble the church for many years. It was a branch of the gross heresy of
Eutyches which sprung up 200 yeai's before. This Eutyches confounded the two natures in Christ, holding that as there was but one Person after the personal union, so there was but one
nature in Christ, viz. the divine nature, the human nature being swallowed up. To maintain this the better, his followers maintained that Christ had but one kind of will. This heresy was condemned by the 6th general council at Constantinople, as well as by other ancient councUs. And the fathers of the church in those times, did confute it by these very words of our Saviour which we have now in hand." Fetter on Mark.
'
319
perfection than
here
To take
patiently
to
like nothing
but what
approves,
God
to
God
it,
to
prefer pain, if
please
to
God
to
send
to ease, if
God
fit
bestow
it,
to lie passive
under
this is the
we can
is
a perfect pattern.
Let us
strive
and labour
to
have
in this matter.
It
is
do
so.
Nothing brings us
so
much
and
own way.
^It
is
the best
Knowledge, and
all
gifts,
and
feelings,
very im-
They are often to be foimd in unconBut a continually increasing disposition to submit our own wills to the will of God, is a far more healthy sj-mptom. It is a sign that we are really "growing
certain evidences.
verted persons.
in grace,
Let us mark,
much infirmUy
James,
Christians.
We have a painful
to
They
slept
have watched
Though invited by our Lord to watch with Him, they slept. Though warned a short time before
that danger
was
at hand,
and
fail,
they
its
slept.
Though
more
men
9i20
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
that, so long as saints are in the body,
and
they are
\sTitten for
our learning.
Let us
Let us ever
natural to us
and
specially in the
feel that spirit
When we
care.
John
in the garden,
and take
The solemn
lest
our ears
"
The
but the
weak."
of his death.
Are we
awake ?
nature,
true Christians ?
souls
a ready "spirit"
evil,
a carnal
nature inclined to
and a
good. These two are contrary one to the other. (Gal. v. 17.)
Sin and the devil will always find helpers in our hearts.
If
we do not
crucify
Are we true
awake
?
Chiistians,
let
souls
Then
We
must watch
we
are
upon enemy's
ground.
We
at stated times.
We
must pray
as well as watch,
and watch
as well as pray.
321
self-confidence
is
and
self-
enthusiasm and
weakness, and
fanaticism.
his
own
the
knoMring
it
is
man
that will
MARK
4^3
XIV. 4352.
!
And
iraraediately, while
he yet
spake, Cometh Judas, one of the twelve, and with him a great multitude with swords and staves, from the Chief Priests and the Scribes and the
elders.
'
44 And he that betrayed him had given them a token, saying, Whomsoever I shall kiss, that same is he take him, and lead him away safely. 45 And as soon as he was come, he goeth straightway to him, and saith. Master, master and kissed him. 46 And they laid their hands on him, and took him. 47 And one of them that stood by drew a sword, and smote a servant of
;
the High Priest, and cut off his ear. 48 And Jesus answered and said unto them, Are ye come out, as against a thief, with swords and loith staves to take me ? 49 I was daily with you in the temple teaching, and ye took me not but the Scriptures must be fulfilled. 50 And they all forsook him, and
fled.
51 And there followed him a certain young man, having a linen cloth cast about hii naked body ; and the
young men
>
fled
laid hold on him 52 And he left the linen cloth, and from them naked,
:
Let us
how
little
We
read that
Judas came
to take
Him
It
Lord would be vigorously defended by His disciples, and that He would not be taken prisoner without fighting.
The
chief priests
and
the
world: ^now
xviii. 36.)
"My kingdom
is
not of this
is
my
(John
m
We
to
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
shall do well to
remember
this in all
our endeaIt
is
not
flesh.
"The weapons
hosts."
"Not by
of truth
my
Spirit, saith
the Lord of
The cause
Roman
church, has
men by
bloody persecutions.
But
by
It grows
is
how
to
all things
God's word.
to those
:
who
a striking manner
close of
from Gethsemane
to Calvary,
The wrath
people,
of His enemies,
His
His
rejection
by His own
His
had
all
all foretold.
whom
Judas brought
to lay
823
into effect.
all
Let us
us
is
around
The
may
wishes.
The
position of the
desire.
Church may
unlike what
we
The wickedness
of worldly men,
often
afflict
and the
souls.
inconsistencies of believers,
may
our
But
there
is
machine of
this universe,
and making
all
things
work
The
Not one
jot or tittle in
them
the
be accompKshed.
The kings
of
earth
ii.
2.)
But
the resurrec-
morning
God.
the
much
may
We
his
company
forsook
laid
He
quietly
Him
and
fled."
Perhaps
the hope
up
to that
and
set
Himself
their
were aU forgotten.
the winds.
The
The
They "
all
forsook
him and
fled."
hi
There
is
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
sometliing deeply mstnictive in this incident.
Happy
is
wisdom
own
strength.
The
fear
man
We
never
know
with
what we may
our faith
humility.
we
are tempted, or to
what extent
may
give way.
Let us be
clothed
them down
no grace
at
all,
if
we
see
them
overtaken in a
Him
Yet they
rose again
one
trial
it is
the trial
we
fail
love.
It
is
a bitter
which
all
Ministers
fail
them.
Relations
them.
Friends
fail
them.
One
cistern
be broken,
in the
and
to
hold no water.
is
But
let
all
th^ir sorrows.
to see friends
and
disciples failing
it is
Him
in the
hour
of need.
Yet He bore
patiently,
withstanding aU.
He
325
US strive to do likewise.
fail us.
iii.
It
is
written, "
His compassions
not." (Lam.
22.*
* The question has often been asked, " Who was the certain young man,' mentioned at the end of this passage, on whom the young men laid hold, and who fled away naked ? " St. Mark is the only evangelist who relates this circumstance and he has given us no clue to farther knowledge as to who it was, or why the event
' ;
is
mentioned.
No
is,
The utmost
answer to these questions has yet been given. that can be said of any of the explanations attempted, that they ai*e conjectures and speculations.
satisfactory
"Some," says Petter in his commentary on Mark, "have thought that it was one of the twelve disciples, viz., James the son of Alpheus, the Lord's brother, or kinsman of our Saviour, (whose appearance was perhaps like our Lord's.) " This is the view of Epiphanius and Jerome. Others have thought that it was John, the beloved disciple. This is the view of Ambrose, Chrysostom, and Gregory. But it could be neither of them, nor any other of the twelve, because it is said immediately before, that they " all fled " upon the taking of our Saviour, whereas this young man followed o\ir Saviour at this time. It is more likely that it was some good young man, who dwelt near the garden of Gethsemane, who hearing the noise and stir that was made about the taking and binding of our Saviour, did arise suddenly out of his bed to see what was the matter, and perceiving that they had cnielly taken and boimd our Saviour, and were leading Him away, did follow after Him to see what would be done with Him, whereby it appears that he was a well-wisher to our Saviour."
Theophylact and Euthymius think it probable that it was some yovmg man who followed our Lord from the house where He ate the passover with His disciples. Some think that it was the Evangelist
show the cruelty, rage, and ferocity of those who took our Lord. They were ready to lay hands on any one who was any where near Him, and to make prisoners indiscriminately of all who even appeared to be connected with Him.
is to
Some have thought that the whole transaction exhibits the utter " This young man," says Clarius, " would desertion of our Lord. rather escape naked than be taken as one of the followers of Christ."
that
it is
related to
show the
real peril in
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
MARK
53
XIV. 5365.
in the midst, and asked Jesus, saying,
And they
Priest
:
High
sembled all the Chief Priests and the elders and the Scribes. 54 And Peter followed him afar off, even into the palace of the High Priest and he sat with the servants, and warmed himself at the fire. 55 And the Chief Priests and all the council sought for witness against Jesus to put him to death and found
:
Answerest thou nothing ? what w vt which these witness against thee : 61 But he held Ms peace, and answered nothing. Again the High Priest asked him, and said unto him, Art thou the Christ, the Son of the
Blessed } 62 And Jesus said, I am and ye shall see the Son of man sitting on the right hand of power, and coming in the clouds of heaven. 63 Then the High Priest rent his
:
none. 56 For many bare false witness against him, but their witness agreed not together. 57 And there arose certain, and bare false witness against him, saving, 58 "We heard him say, I will destroy this temple that is made with hands, and within three days I will build another made without hands. 59 But neither so did their witness agree together. 60 And the High Priest stood up
clothes,
and
saith,
}
further witnesses
64 Te have heard the blasphemy what think ye ? And they all condemned him to be guilty of death. 65 And some began to spit on him, and to cover his face, and to buffet him, and to say unto him. Prophesy and the servants did strike him with the palms of their hands.
Solomon
dignity,
tells iis
is set
in great
and the
rich sit in
(Eccles. x. 6.)
We
by
and
to
make
it
divine regards the whole event as strongly figurait an antitype of what took place on the day of atonement, and at the cleansing of a leper. He considers the yoimg man escaping to represent the goat let go free, and the bird let loose ; while our Lord represents the goat offered up, and the bird slain. See Lev. xiv. 7, and xvi. 22.
tive.
One eminent
He
sees in
I offer no opinion on any of the above explanations, excepting that I look on the last as eminently fanciful and unsatisfactoiy. Bullinger remai-ks sensibly, " It does not interest us much to know who this young man was, and it would not bring any very gi-eat fruit to us, if we did know. If it had been useful and wholesome for us to know, the Spirit of God would not have been silent, seeing that He is often mai'vellously diUgeut in relating very Biinute things."
,327
"We
see the
whom are
and
hid
all
the treasures of
elders,
"We
com-
bining together to
Him who
all
will
mankind.
are true.
"We are
told
that
led
away
prisoner,
"Peter
followed
priest
:
Him
afar
sat
off,
and he
at the fire." *
Having
to
he ought
have
remembered
sumption.
his
It brought
of faith, for
It threw
him
into
likely to get
good but
transgression,
for
his
last
and greatest
to be
^his
But
it is
overlooked, that
when a
begun
to back-
* In the expression " warmed himself at the fire," it is worthy of remark, that the Greek word which we translate "fire," is not the
same as that translated "fire of coals," in John xviii. 18. It would rather bear the meaning of " light," or a fire so blazing as to give
light.
The remark is not without interest, as it explains how easilj Peter was recognized and discovered by those who sat aroimd him, The bright light of the fiie shining as one of Christ's disciples.
upon him made concealment impossible.
328
slide
first
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
first faith,
at his
He
He
blindness seems to
of his understanding.
He
appears to
common
Like
Like David,
idleness,
Like Peter, he
may
begin with
^go
on
to foolish trifling
we know anything
of holiness, there
no saying
to
to petty incon-
we may
om'selves one
day committing
Let us never
precise.
brink of
evil.
and too
No
Christ
had
"
many
Him
We
To be
seized
when
innocent,
is
a severe
affliction.
But
to hear
men
329
know
that
it
" The words of a a cross indeed talebearer," says Solomon, " are as wounds." (Prov.
untrue,
this is
!
xviii. 8.)
"Deliver
"from lying
lips
and a
deceitful tongue."
Great
Let
it
never
surprise
true
Christians
if
they are
They must
Let them
as a matter of course,
all
and
see in
must bear
after conversion.
among Satan's
choicest weapons.
Christ,
When
he cannot deter
men from
it
serving
he
labours to harass
comfortable.
Let us bear
patiently,
it
a strange thing.
often
The words
:
of the
come
to
our minds
men
when men
all
shaU
revile you,
manner
vi.
my
sake."
(Luke
what
26.
Matt.
V. 11.)
Let us observe,
testimony our
distinct
Lord
bore to
The high priest asks Him the solemn " question, Art thou the Christ, the Son of the blessed ?" He receives at once the emphatic reply, " I am and ye
advent in glory.
:
Son of
Man
sitting
300
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
to
be had in
these
after
He
am
not
the Christ,"
that
He was
to
He was
worthy
be believed.
He
all
They were
majestj",
see
Him
in royal
power and
and a King.
Israel
If Israel
told
was unbelieving,
it
was not
what
to believe.
Christ's second
comiug.
Once more
face of
at the very
and in the
Him
to
asserting the
He
will
come again
own
personal Christianity.
Let us
Saviour
is
this world.
whom we
be not
who
who
lives for
us and intercedes,
^the
^but
the Christ
who
will
and
to
MARK
66
XrV. 6672,
70 And he denied it again. And a they that stood by said again to Peter, Surely thou art one of them for thou art a GaUlsean, and thy speech agpreeth thereto.
little after,
:
as Peter was beneath in the palace, there cometh one of the maids of the High Priest 67 And when she saw Peter warming himself, she looked upon him, and said, And thou also wast with Jesus of Nazareth. 68 But he denied, saying, I know not, neither understand I what thou sayest. And he went out into the porch ; and the cock crew. 69 And a maid saw him again, and began to say to them that stood by, This is one of them.
And
71 And he began to curse and to swear, sayitig, I know not this man of whom ye speak. 72 And the second time the cock crew. And Peter called to mind the word that Jesus said unto him, Before the cock crow twice, thou shalt deny
me
thrice.
thereon, he wept.
A SHTP"WTiECK
are losi
It
is
is
when no
lives
ship's
Yet no shipwreck
is
half so
Though
raised again
saved from
hell,
he loses
much by
Such
we have now
and
Let us
read.
instructive stor}',
from these
verses,
fall.
how
We
know
that
apostle of Jesus
special
Christ-
He
commenconfession
after
noble
jona:"
"I
" Blessed
art
will give
of heaven."
privileges,
He was
who had
enjoyed
special
and had
special mercies
shown
to him.
Yet
here
we
see this
so entirely overcome
382
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
by
He
declares
that he
not
healed his
own
him up
mount
of transfiguration,
!
And
it
three times
And
Him
And
above
he does
all this in
is,
They
and
and
liable to fall.
They
are
meant
to impress
of daily watchfulness,
we
are in the
he
The word
of
God
contains
many
Noah,
we
shall do
well to observe.
The
histories of
will supply us
with mourn-
man
is
so strong as to be
this.
beyond
Let us
that
Happy
is
the
man
Let us
MARK, CHAP.
XIV.
333
The beginning of Peter's trial was nothing more than the simple remark of " a maid of the High Priest."
"Thou
also
There
is
nothing to show that these words were spoken with anyhostile purpose.
fairly
see,
they might
mean
that this
to be a
But
this simple
remark
was enough
and
to
The
chiefest
disciples is cast
down,
woman
There
ought
is
fact.
It
to teach us that
no temptation
is
too small
and
trifling to
overcome
If
us, except
held up.
God be
for us
" I can do
all
me."
If
grace,
and and
leave us to ourselves,
walls,
we
a prey to the
first
contemptible
they seem
and
insignificant.
There
is
nothing
little
little
whole lump.
little
kindle a great
leak
may
little
provocation
may
8S4
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
The
conclusion of the
to
passage
is
very
aflfecting.
"Peter called
mind the
deny
me
thrice."
Who
can pretend to
must have
mind ?
Who
and
self-reproach,
and
bitter
have overwhelmed
his soul ?
To have
!
To have
fallen so repeatedly
!
To have
fallen in the
cutting thoughts.
into his soul.
The
is
iron
There
"when he thought
God's servants
The experience of Peter is only the experience of all who have pelded to temptation. Lot, and
history,
own EngHsh
"the
own ways."
Like
lik'e
many
tears.
settled conviction
most holiness
always the
way
of most happiness.
it
way of The
shall never
His servants
If
to
walk
carelessly
to temptation.
ILAJRK,
CHAP. XV.
335
forgives us,
shall be sure to
smart for
it.
Though He
He
will
make
own ways.
Those that
Hitti
follow the
Lord most
fully, shall
always follow
most
comfortably.
who
(Psalm
xvi. 4.)
MARK
1
XV. 115.
8
straightway in the morning the Chief Priests held a consnltation with the elders and Scribes and the
And
And
whole council, and bound Jesus, and carried him away, and delivered him to Pilate. 2 And Pilate asked him. Art thou the king of the Jews r And he answering said unto him, Thou sayest it. 3 And the Chief Priests accused him of many things but he answered
:
nothing. 4 And Pilat asked him again, saying, Answerest thou nothing } behold how many things they witness against
thee.
began to desire him to do as he had ever done unto them. 9 But Pilate answered them, saying. Will ye that I release unto you the King of the Jews } 10 For he knew that the Chief Priests had delivered bim for envy. 11 But the Chief Priesta moved the people, that he should rather release Barabbas unto them. 12 And Pilate answered and said again unto them, What will ye then that I shall do unto him whom ye call the King of the Jews ? 13 And they cried out again, Crucify him. 14 Then Pilate said unto them, Why, what evU hath he done And they cried out the more exceedingly, Crucify him.
.'
there was one named Barabwhich lay bound with them that had made insurrection ^vith him, who had committed mui'der in the insur-
And
bas,
rection.
These
which
St.
Mark
de-
"the
Lamb
It
of God,
which taketh
away the
rence.
is
We should
call to
us.
off,
We
should
remember that His death is the life of our souls, and that unless His blood had been shed, we must have
perished miserably in our sins.
336
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
verses,
their
oim nation
The chapter opens with the fact, that the chief priests hound Jesus and " delivered Him to Pilate," the Roman
Governor.
Why
did they do so ?
By
this
one act
"The
sceptre
whom
Grod
had promised
send,
Yet there
this
remembered
prophecy.
They
would
what
fulfilling
it
know
not.
and
unbelief,
true.
The unhappy
and
scofiers
who make
to
would do well
days
remember that
foretold.
their conduct
shall
"There
after their
come in the
lusts."
walking
own
(2 Peter
iii.)
and
lowliness
When He
against
stood
answered nothing.
false,
He Him were
and
He knew no
He was
337
He
made
first
self.
against
Him
without a murmur.
is
the
father
Adam and the first Our Adam was guilty, and yet tried to excuse himThe second Adam was guiltless, and yet made no
all.
defence at
is
dumb,
so openeth
he not
mouth."
(Isai.
liii.
7.)
Let us learn
to sufier patiently,
and not
to
complain, whatever
God may
think
fit
to lay
upon
us.
we
xxxix.
1.)
to irritation
and
ill-temper,
trials
may seem
glorifies
God
so
much
as patient
it,
suffering.
it
"H
when ye do
called,
ye take
20, 21.)
Let us mark,
the
wavering
Pilate.
from the passage before us that Pilate was " He knew that the convinced of our Lord's innocence.
clear
chief priests
had
delivered
him
for envy."
We see him
aclast
and
so to satisfy his
own
At
he
and ruin of
his
own
soul.
033
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
A
is
man
in
liigh
place
He
is like
him with temptations and snares. It gives him power for good or evil, which, if he knows not how to use it aright, is sure to bring him into difficulties, and to make him unLet us pray much for great men. They need ,happy. High places great grace to keep them from the devil.
No wonder
recommends
(1
Tim.
ii.
1.)
many and peculiar temptations. How hardly shall a "Seekest thou rich man enter the kingdom of God.
great things for thyself ? seek
xl. 5.)
Let us mark,
guilt of the
exceeding
Jews in
At
had an opportunity of
it.
Barabbas should be
go
free.
They chose
let
go
free.
They chose
death.
of putting our
was no
longer theirs.
licly
responsihility of
"What
ye that I shall
"Crucify him,
in our
do unto
him?" was
Pilate's question.
crucify him,"
The agents
chiefly
must always
rest
Jews.
We
this part
339
and no wonder.
To
reject Christ
!
It
But
let
we do not unwittingly
found at
Christ.
last to
The
service of sin
and the
service of
God
are
The
and
right choice?
Are we
Happy
is
answer.
Let us mark,
what a striking
of salvation.
put to death.
sinless
set free
is
sinner
is
and the
spared,
and Christ
is crucified.
"We have in
emblem
of the
manner
in
justifies
the imgodly.
He
does
it,
a mighty Substitute
They deserve punishment, but has sufiered for them. They deserve
position of Barabbas.
We are
" when
all
by nature in the
"We
But
we were without hope," Christ the innocent died And now God for Christ's sake can be
in Jesus."
340
set before us.
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
Our
we
are
so great a salvation
we
make use of it for our own souls. May we never till rest we can say by faith, " Christ is mine. I deserve hell. But Christ has died for me, and beheving in Him
MAKE
16
XV. 1632.
ing lots upon them, what every man should take. 25 And it was the third hour, and they crucified him. 26 And the superscription of his accusation was written over, THE
the soldiers led him away into the hall, called Prsetorium and they call together the whole band. 17 And they clothed him with purple, and platted a crown of thorns, and put it about his head, 18 And began to salute him, Hail, King of the Jews 19 And they smote him on the head with a reed, and did spit upon him, and bowing their knees worshipped
;
And
thieves
they crucify two the one on his right hand, and the other on his left. 28 And the Scripture was fulfilled,
;
him. 20 And when they had mocked him, they took off the purple from him, and put his own clothes on him, and led him out to crucify him. 21 And they compel one Simon a CvTcnian, who passed by, coming out 01 the country, the Father of Alexander and Rufus, to bear his cross. 22 And they bring him unto the place Golgotha, which is, being interpreted,
The
place of a skull.
:
23
24 And when they had crucified him, they parted his garments, cast-
saith. And he was numbered with the transgressors. 29 And they that passed by railed on him, wagging their hea&s, and saying. Ah, thou that destroyest the temple, and buildest it in three days, 30 Save thyself, and come down from the cross. 31 Likewise also the Chief Priests mocking said among themselves with the Scribes, He saved others himself he cannot save. 32 Let Christ the King of Israel descend now from the cross, that we may see and believe. And they that were crucified with him reviled him.
which
The
passage
we have now
read,
is
show us the
towards sinners.
The
sufferings described in it
if
who was
only a
man
like ourselves.
But when we
reflect
341
we
are lost
And when we
from
reflect further
we may meaning when he says, " The " God commendeth love of Christ passeth knowledge." His love toward us in that while we were yet sinners, Christ died for us." (Ephes. iii. 19 Rom. v. 8.)
like ourselves
hell,
;
"We
step
shall
find
it
useful to
Him
hy
step
PHate
to
His
cross.
There
is
a deep
meaning
striking
in every jot
and
tittle
of His sorrows.
All were
let
emblems of
spiritual truths.
And
us not
forget as
sins
we
we and our
"Christ
these sufferings.
He
might
bring us to God."
(1.
Peter
iii.
own Surety and Substitute that we are reading. First of all we see Jesus delivered into the hands of
the
Roman soldiers, as a criminal condemned to death. He, before whom the whole world will one day stand and be
judged, allowed Himself to be sentenced unjustly, and
this ?
It
sinful
Him, might be
set free
delivered
It
God
Secondly,
we
342
stock
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
by
tlie
Roman
soldiers.
purple " in derision, and put " a crown of thorns " on His
head, in mockery of His kingdom.
Him
reed,
and did
upon Him,**
It
vile as
we
are,
glory, honour,
and eternal
life
through faith
in Christ's atonement.
It
we
The
soldiers
lots
who
upon
led
Him away
them."
this?
It
God at the last day. It was done who are aU defiled with sin, might have a weddinggarment, wherein we may sit down by the side of angels,
and not be ashamed.
Fourthly,
we
most ignominious
male-
and humiliating of
It
factors.
it
was
was counted
accursed.
written,
(Gal.
" Cursed
iii.
hangeth on a tree."
13)
this ?
It
bom
was done
to
3*4^
we
all deserve because of sin, by laying it on Christ. " Christ hath redeemed us from the curse of the law
being
Fifthly,
sinner.
made a curse for us." (Gal. iii. 13.) we see Jesus reckoned a transgressor and a
"With Him
sin,
He
guile,
and in
whom
was
there
was no
this?
It
that we,
who
are'
may
It
who
may
we
see Jesus
as
one
who was an impostor, and unable to save Himself. And why was this ? It was that we, in our last hours, through faith in Christ may have strong consolation. It aU came to pass that we may enjoy strong assurance, may know whom we have believed, and may go down the valley of the shadow of death fearing no evil.
Let us leave the passage with a deep sense of the enormous debt which aU believers owe
that 'they have, and are, and hope
to the doing
for,
to Christ.
All
may
be traced up
Through His
suffer-
through
Their
is
His His
death,
life.
sins
were imputed
to them.
Him.
righteousness
imputed
No wonder
for
that St.
Paul
gift."
says,
His unspeakable
344
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
souls.
Let us resinners.
member what we
of God, the
aud miserable
is,
maker
of all things.
And
then
let
us re-
member,
most
painful, horrible,
this love
Surely the
thought of
make us
sacrifice
Him who
1.)
lived
and died
for us.
(2 Cor. v. 4.
Rom.
our
Let the
cross of Christ be
often before
all
minds.
Christianity
is so likely to
as a comforting
effect
on our
MAEK
XV. 3338.
one ran and filled a spunge and put it on a reed, to drink, saving, Let alone let us see whether lia8 will come to take him down. 37 And Jesus cried with a loud voice, and gave up the ghost. 38 And the veil of the temple was rent in twain from the top to the bottom.
36
full of vinegar,
33 And when the sixth hour was oome, there was darkness over the whole land until the ninth hour. 34 And at the ninth hour Jesus cried with a loud voice, saving, Eloi, Eloi, lama sabachthani } which is, being interpreted. My God, my God, why hast thou forsaken me 35 And some of them that stood by, when they heard it, said, Behold, he
.'
And
calleth Elias.
"We have
Christ.
Lord Jesus
Nothing in the
whole history of a
man
us.
is
But
moment
as that
work
of
was accomplished.
paid.
was
at length
The kingdom
ftdly
open to
MARK,
all believers.
CH.U. XT.
845
about their
may
and
Mark
One
is
hours.
The
other
is
events.
Jerusalem.
soldiers.
The
rent
would
unbelieving companions.
which men would not say, " we have heard and seen strange things to-day."
What
It taught
They
slaying
their
own King,
of God.
The Son
God
left
with-
when He became
sin for us
transgressions.*
* It is almost unnecessary to remark, that the darkness which covered the heaven on the day of the crucifixion, could not possibly have been occasioned bv an eclipse of the sun, because the passover was always held at full moon. It is evident that the darkness was miraculous, and caused by some special interference with the course of nature.
m
What
did
tlie
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
miraculous rending of the veil
mean ?
into
It taught the
abolition
way
mankind
boldness,
by
Christ's death.
God with
down.
all barriers
between
May we
veil !
.the rent
To attempt
Christ,
is
Church of
priesthood,
by returning
to altars, sacrifices,
and a
rent
veil,
May we
riEiculous
darkness
minds on
to that
(Jude 13.)
The darkness endured by our The cross was only for three hours.
all
who
reject
His
sin, shall
be for evermore.
verses,
how
truly
us,
and
really our
Lord
Jestis Christ
sins.
We
my
see
it
He
My
God,
God,
why
would be
useless to pretend to
fathom
all
the depth
contain.
They imply an
are unable to
holiest servants
amount of mental
conceive.
suffering,
such as
we
The agony
of
some of God's
What
then
347
Son of God,
of the holy
when all the sin of all the world was laid upon His head, when He felt Himself reckoned guilty, though without sin, when He felt His Father's countenance turned away
from
Him
The agony
of that season
It
is
a high thing.
it.
We We may believe
is
it
out to perfection.
One
and that
the im-
we
and substitution
to do, that Jesus
To
suppose, as
some dare
was
self-sacrifice,
makes
this
dying
appear
It
makes
Him
patient and
One
is
satisfactory.
That explanation
cross.
He
uttered
His dying
sin laid
Him.
and
yet to he loved by
Let us observe,
to he
forsaken of
God for a
time,
Him.
We
this,
Lord's dying words on the cross. hear Him saying to His Father, " hast thou forsaken me ? " and yet
We
Why
addressing
Him
as "
my
God."
We
know
for a season,
He was
whom, both
in His
348
There
is
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
deep experimental instruction in
all
this,
which
doubt
true Christians.
No
there
is
He
was
suf-
and not
His own.
But
still
after
making
Jesus was for a time " forsaken of the Father," and yet
for all that
As
it
was
Head
of the
Church, so
it
may
too,
be in
They
though
feel
may
sometimes
too,
They
some-
to
Him-
may
be constrained to cry,
"My
God,
My
God,
why
from
me ?
"
feel
" forsaken,"
to learn
way
to despair.
No
They ought
there
is
to search their
own
hearts,
consolations to be small.
But
let
them not
clude that they are cast off for ever, or are self-deceivers,
at
all.
Let them
stiU wait
on the
me
yet will I
15)
Lord,
"Who
is
among you
of the Lord,
that
^that
no
light ? let
him
trust in the
name
and
349
down,
"
Why
my
Hope
1.
and why
me
10.
Psalm
xlii.
11.)
MAEK
XV. 39-47.
|
39 And vi^ea the centurion, which stood over agaiast him, saw that he BO cried out, and gave up the ghost, he said, Truly this man was the Son of God. 40 There were also women looking
:
on afar off among whom was Mary Magdalene, and Mary the mother of James the less and of loses, and Salome 41 (Who also, when he was in 46 And he bought fine linen, and Galilee, followed him, and ministered took bim down, and wrapped him in unto him ;) and many other women the linen, and laid him in a sepulchre which came up with bim unto Jeru- which was hewn out of a rock, and aalem. rolled a stone unto the door of the 42 And now when the even was sepulchre. come, because it was the preparation, 47 And Mary Magdalene and Mary that is, the day before the sabbath, the mother of Joses beheld where ha 43 Joseph of Arimathsea, an hon- was laid.
\
I | ! i
curable counsellor, which also waited for the kingdom of God, came, and went in boldly unto Pilate, and craved the body of Jesus. 44 And Pilate marvelled if he were already dead and calling unto him whether the centurion, he asked he had been any while dead. 45 And when he knew it of the centurion, he gave the body to Joseph.
:
Mm
The
all
is
On
it
We need
Three kinds of
we have now
near the
Galilee to
cross,
The Roman centurion, who stood women who followed our Lord from Jerusalem, the disciples, who buried Him,
read.
^the
were
all
Their united
deceived.
evidence
above suspicion.
What
insensibility.
350
lay
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
down His
this
life,
Let
Our Saviour
this
really
and truly
Let us
one thing, in
here
passage,
what
honourable mention
specially told that,
The names
of
"We are
were the same who had followed our Lord in Galilee and
many
other
to Jerusalem."
We
things.
We
that,
when
fled,
all
the
to
friends.
It only shows us
what
God sometimes
first,
chooses the
weak
things of
The
sometimes
and the
first last.
The
faith of
women sometimes
fails
stands upright,
when
the faith of
men
But
in
interesting to
New
glorified
to confer through
women, and how much benefit God has been pleased them on the Church, and on the world.
In the Old Testament, we see sin and death brought in by the woman's transgression. In the New, we see Jesus bom of a woman, and life and immortality
brought to light by that miraculous birth.
Testament,
In the Old
we
often see
a snare to man.
woman proving a hindrance and The women before the flood, the
351
In the
New
Testa-
ment,
we
generally see
to
women mentioned
true
religion.
as a help
and
assistance
the cause of
Elizabeth,
Paul
to
all cases
in point.
The
contrast
It
is
is striking,
intentional.
one of the
many proofs,
more abundant
seems meant
It
women have an
to
fill.
Church of
that
There
is
a great work
women can do for God's glory, without being public Happy is that congregation in which women teachers. know this, and act upon it
Let us
notice, for another thing, in this passage, that
whom
little
is
known.
We
cannot
son
who
is
first
time, Joseph of
know nothing of this man's former Arimathasa. We know not how he had learned to love history. We know Christ, and to desire to do Him honour.
nothing of his subsequent history after our Lord
world.
left
We
the
All
we know
is
before us.
We
kingdom
when our
Lord's disciples
had
his
all
forsaken
Him,
He " went
honourably in
own tomb. Others had honoured and confessed our Lord when they saw Him working miracles, but Joseph honoured Him and confessed himself a disciple, when he
352
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
saw
Him
Others had
shown
whom we know
we
No
no grace in a family or
"We know in
part and see only in part, outside the circle in which our
own
lot is cast.
in
by
special
known
tiU the
last
day.
The words of God to Elijah should not be " Yet I have left me seven thousand in Israel."
xix. 18.)
forgotten,
(1
Kings
Let us
Lord Jesus
Himself
to he laid in
we should always
once to
die.
remember.
appointed unto
men
"We
The
coffin
and the
funeral, the
worm and
chill us,
corrupus,
They
sadden
and
fill
It is not in flesh
and
One
is
is
As
surely as
He
MARK, CHAP.
from
tlie
XVI.
all
353
who beKeve in Him rise gloriously in the day of His appearing. Remembering this, they may look down with calmness into the "house appointed for all living." They may recoUect that
tomb, so surely shall
Jesus Himself was once there on their behalf, and has
sting.
is sin,
They maysay
to themselves,
sin is the
law
but thanks be to
God who
The
that
to
we
yet alive.
formed
to
"With
Spirit.
Him we
must
rise again,
and burial
MARK
XVI. 1-8.
I
1 And when the sabbath was past, Mary Magdalene, and ilarj- the mo-
garment
i
affrighted.
<Aer of James, and Salome, had bought sweet spices, that they might come and anoint him. 2 And very early in the morning the first day of thi week, they came unto the sepulchre at the rising of the sun. 3 And they said among themselves. Who shall roll us away the stone from the door of the sepulchre ? 4 And when they looked, they saw that the stone was rolled away for
:
affrighted
j j
which was
is
he
is
risen
he
it
was very
5
great.
,
entering into the sepulchre, they saw a young man sitting on the
And
not here behold the place where they laid him. 7 But go your way, tell his disciples and Peter that he goeth before you into Galilee there shall j'e see him, as he said unto you. 8 And they went out quickly, and for they fled from the sepulchre trembled and were amazed neither said they any thing to any man ; for they were afraid,
:
Let
love
354
to Christ.
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
We have
conduct of
St.
Mark here records. He tells us that they had "bought sweet spices" to anoint our Lord, and that " very
first
To
visit
circumstances.
But
show honour
to
one
whom
their nation
had
despised, this
Yet these
between
feeling
difierence
weak
faith
and strong
faith,
between weak
for light,
and
pardoning mercies.
were
full of
gratitude to
Him
comfort,
and peace.
They were
" Love
is
strong as
love, neither
can the
it."
(Cant.
viii. 6, 7.)
Why
Jesus
that
that
we
among
How
is it
we
is
so seldom
meet with
fire
saints
who
weak
will face
any
and water
It
is
There
the
and the
to Christ,
which
so widely pre-
A low and
A slight
355
God will always be attended by a slight sense of what we owe for oiir redemption. It is the man who feels much forgiven who loves much. " To whom
little is
forgiven, the
same loveth
little."
(Luke
vii.
47.)
the
this passage,
how
as
walked
about the
roU us
sepulchre?"
"They said among away the stone from But their fears were
themselves.
Who
Their
they
the
door of the
needless.
exist.
"When
away."
rolled
What
tive, of
a striking
emblem we have
the experience of
many
cast
Christians
How
often
and
down by
anticipation of
and
yet, in the
A large
the possi-
We
look forward to
all
We
and
conjure up
obstacles.
We
troubles,
as well
as
to-day's.
And
often,
very often,
we
the thing
to pass at all.
Let us pray
more
practical faith.
Let us believe
entirely
we
is
shall never be
shall often
way
is
only a shadow.
356
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
thirdly, in this passage, that th^ friends
to
Let us observe,
he afraid
of angels.
We are
saw an angel
affiighted."
in
the
sepulchre,
"they were
'Words
"Be
which was
crucified."
The
ance.
lesson,
at first sight,
may seem
of
little
import-
We
see
We
is
But the
lesson
is
one
some future
time.
The day
to
The
The
into
bundles to
bum
them.
The
angels
shall
gather the
the angels
wheat of God
Those
His bam.
Those
whom
left to
whom
shame and
everlasting contempt.
Let us
carried
when we
die
we may be
Let us en-
by angels
into
Abraham's bosom.
and love
Him
sure,
and
when
the archangel's
afraid.
heard,
we
shall
have no cause to be
We
shall
rise
friends
357
Let us observe,
kindness of
lastly, in this
God
The
a striking illustration
the other
Mary
him."
were bid
to
tell
them
into Galilee,"
is
shall see
mas-
action.
Yet Simon
Peter,
his
Lord three
times, is specially
There were
were
to
to
be
AR
and Simon
like
be par-
these,
On
no point perhaps
to
pardon
penitent sinners.
om'selves.
"We think of
forget that "
Him
as such
an one as
We
18.)
he delighteth in mercy."
open
(Micah
vii.
to
all
Not
least, let
to
fellow men.
to
we ought
368
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
MARK
9 the
XVI. 9-14.
'
early
to Mary Magdalene, out of whom he had cast seven devils. 10 And she went and told them that had been with him, as they mourned and wept. 11 And thev, when they had heard that he was alive, and had been seen
first
form unto two of them, as they walked, and went into the country. 13 And they went and told it unto neither believed they the residue them. 14 Afterward he appeared unto the eleven as they sat at meat, and upbraided them with their unbelief and hardness of heart, because they believed not them which had seen him after he was risen.
:
Let
dead.
Lord Jesus
In
this
one passage
Mark
us,
He was
to
he
tells
one witness,
Mary Magdalene,
then
two witnesses,
lastly to
two
disciples
and
New
And
St.
Mark.
all
none more
rose from
that
He
There
Christ
It
is
is
great
mercy
in this.
The
resurrection of
was the
It
work that
He came
on earth
to do.
He
paid for sinners was accepted, the atonement for sin accomplished, the head of
bruised,
It is well to
is
remark
how
referred to
by
359
"
He was
Paul, " and was raised again for our justification." (Rom.
iv.
hath begotten us again to a Hvely hope," " says Peter, by the resurrection of Jesus Christ from the
25.)
"
He
dead." (1 Peter
i.
3.)
We
rection
ought to
is
so clearly established.
Gentile,
Roman
guard, the
who were
cannot be
gainsaid.
Christ has not only died for us, but has also
risen again.
to believe
it.
To deny it shows far greater credulity than To deny it a man must put credit in To
believe it
facts.
man
Lord Jesus
Mary
Magdalene.
first
We
are
day of the
week, he appeared
first to
he had
out of
all
whom
others of
Adam's
children,
to behold
a risen Saviour.
alive.
was yet
upon
earth.
this occasion
in favour of
Mary Magdalene.
was the
rose
whom
when He
The
fact is remarkable,
and
* There
is
nothing in the
New
Testament
to justify the
commoa
360
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
We
" first
Mary Magdalene," our Lord meant to show us how much He values love and faithfulness. Last at the
cross
and
first
Master
to
honour
Him when
to
dead, this
first to
warm-hearted
disciple
was allowed
be the
see
victory
was won.
It
was intended
to
be
much
earth
for
He will honour, and that those Him upon earth, shall find Him even upon doing much for them. May we never forget this.
ever
who who do
May we
Christ's
remember that
is
for those
who
sake there
"an
hundred-fold
now
in this
present time."
We
fort all
It
was meant
to
show us
we may have fallen, we are raised to entire peace with God, if we repent and believe the Gospel. Though before far off, we are made nigh. Though before enemies, we are made dear children. Old things are passed
however
away, and
all
(1 Cor. v. 17.)
notion that
Mary Magdalene had been a sinner against the seventh commandment more than other commandments. There is no
scriptural warrant for calling hospitals and asylums intended for fallen women, " Magdalene Hospitals." No better authority can be discovered for the common idea on the subject than tradition.
At the same time it is only fair to say, that there seems strong probability for supposing that the sins of Mary Magdalene had been very great. There was probably some grave cause for her being possessed by seven devUs, though the natxire of it has not been revealed to us.
361
in God's
The blood
sight.
of Christ
and John
iniquity.
all
to Christ,
forgiven.
and
Our
are
sins
and
iniquities,
Mary Magdalene,
lastly, in
remembered no more.
how much
tceak-
Let us mark,
ness there
is
these verses,
Three times in
Magdalene
told
them
that our
Lord had
risen,
"they
believed not."
appeared to
two of them, as they walked, we read of the residue, " neither believed they them." Finally, when our Lord
Himself appeared
that
to
them
we
are told
and hardness
an ex-
of heart."
so striking
to believe that
which runs
These eleven
Lord that
came,
all
men had been told repeatedly by our He would rise again. And yet, when the time
forgotten,
was
hand
vinced at
is
last,
the
glory of
God
evil.
of the eleven apostles are the confirmation of our faith in these latter days.
362
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
apostles, a useful
to feel sur-
Let us cease
our
when we
own
in
heart.
Let
other
believers.
We
if
We
are
men
it
of
We
is
must count
no
strange thing,
our experience
their's,
sometimes like
their's,
and
and
if
Let
us
are
be deHvered from
power.
But
let
we have no
grace, because
we
we
have no part or
lot
we
feel unbelieving.
fail to
Let us not
sage,
ask ourselves, as
we
the one
thing needful.
To know the
to
souls.
and
We must yield
(E,om.
sin,
is
vi.
We
and
walk in newness of
Christianity.
saving
MAEK
15
XVI. 1518.
cast out devils
;
And he
Go ye
kito all the world, and preach the Gospel to every creature. 16 He that believeth and is baptized shall be saved ; but he that beheveth not shall be damned. 17 And these signs shall follow them that believe ; In my name shall they
new tongues
18
if
and
they irink any deadly thing, it them; they shall layhands on the sick, and they shall
shall not hurt
recover.
363
We
work
ought to notice,
firstly,
His
apostles.
He
is
them
He
marks out
their
significance,
He comes "Go ye
again, in
woiild have us
know
that
all
the
In
man
is
he
is
hy
without
we
see a child of
faith, and without love. Wherever Adam, whatever be his colour, we see is wicked, and who needs the blood of
be offered freely to
mankind. The
God
so loved the
ungodly,"
is to
We
in the
proclamation.
to the elect.
We have no warrant for limiting the offer We come short of the fulness of Christ's
if
we
God
is full
of love
to you, Christ is
will, let
to save you."
life
"Whosoever
the strongest
him take
the water of
Christ,
and abroad.
Remembering
364
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
all
mankind.
we cannot go
to the
we
who
shall
own
door.
Let us labour
dis-
on,
unmoved by
approve
scorn.
missionary
to
We
may
They only
say,
show
will.
and of Christ's
nor
They understand
affirm.
neither
what they
in
whereof they
We
ought
to notice,
secondly,
tells
us should be offered
who
"He
is
baptized
Every
It
importance of baptism.
to salvation,
is it
where
Not "he
and
that believeth"
is
simply,
but
"he
that believeth
from
water,
it
who
are never
washed
But
to be despised
and neglected.
Himself, and
prayerfully,
is
when used
itself
and
doubtless accompanied
by a
special blessing.
conveys no grace.
We must
Him who
is
commanded
it to
be used.
But the
public confession
of Christ, which
is
MARK, CHAP.
sacramental
;
x\^.
365
act,
rightly used,
we may
He
seals it
by His
blessiug.
This
is
is
"
He
the
man that
shall
be
lost for
evermore.
He may
made a member
Table.
He may be a He may
all
But
him nothing
this faith ?
all.
he lacks saving
is
faith in Christ.
Have we
flee to
This
the great
Except we
feel
our
sins,
and
feeling
them
Christ
by
faith,
find at length
we had
better never
We
are
who
die unbeHeving.
"He
How
awful the
words sound
from the
How
fearful the
lips of
away."
is
Let no
Him who said, " My words shall not pass man deceive us with vain words. There
for all
an eternal hell
who
this
ness,
The
mercy
that
who
wise.
obstinately refuse
"
Oh
men were
Oh
that they
would consider
He
that died upon the cross, has given us plain warning that
there
is
366
"We ought
promises of
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
to notice, lastly, in these verses, the gracious
sjiecial
Lord
liolds
out in
His
parting words
difficulties of
to
them
have
to do. to fight
He knew well the enormous the work which He had just commissioned He knew the mighty battle they would
His
He
therefore cheers
them by
telling
them
that miracles
that believe.
In
my name
new tongues
and
if
them
sick,
The
fulfilment of
most of these
The age
ment
of miracles no doubt
to continue
long passed.
first
They
first
beyond the
estabHsh-
of the Church.
It
is
only
when
plants are
planted,
that
they hapIt
is
remember
this.
much
perplexity.
we
may
want
The
great
Head
His eye
continually
upon them.
He
come
to their
He
is
wanted.
367
When
the
enemy
shall
shall
come
of the
Lord
lift
Hx. 19.)
Finally, let us never forget, that Christ's believing
Church in the world is of itself a standing miracle. The conversion and perseverance in grace of every member of that
Church,
is
The renewal
of every saint
is
as
for this
by experience,
:
new tongue. The age of Happy are they who and can say, "I was
am
alive again
MARK
XVI. 1920.
20 And they went forth, and preached every where, the Lord working with thein, and confirming the word
19 So then after the Lord had spoken unto them, he was received up into heaven, and sat on the right hand of God.
Amen.
the
to
passage
it
is
a singularly suitable
conclusion
the history
of our
Lord Jesus
Christ's
earthly ministry.
It tells us
He
left this
what His
disciples
all
may
expect until
He
verses,
the place
to
which our
earth,
finished
His work on
and
368
the place ichere
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
He
is
We
are told
that "
right
He was
hand of God."
He
He came
and Redeemer,
in
and power
There
heaven
idle,
He
sits,
not
He
died
There
He
lives,
ever
making
intercession
so able to save
them
to the uttermost.
is
25.)
all
There
true Christians.
They
their
live in
an
evil world.
They
and
troubled about
many
things,
down by
own weakness and infirmities. They live in a dying They feel their bodies gradually failing and world. giving way. They have before them the awful prospect
of soon launching forth into a world unknown.
^What
They
they
die,
and never
sleeping,
sleep, Jesus
wakes,
Jesus
is
never weary,
is
Almighty,
and
though
though they
is this
Blessed indeed
thought
Our Saviour, though unseen, is an actually living person. "We travel on towards a dwelling where our best Friend
is
us.
(John
all
xiv. 2.)
made
things ready.
is
No
wonder that
?
St.
is
Paul exclaims,
Christ that died
;
"Who
He
that
is
condemneth
It
MARK, CHAP.
risen again,
XVI.
369
who
is
who
also
maketh
(Rom.
viii.
34.)
the
Let us mark,
Lord Jesus
who
the
We
when
with
them,"
signs
following."
and from
We
know
that bonds
first
and
afflictions,
fruits that
But we know
Believers
and
The
little
seed of Christianity
entirely
on
whom
of the
shall ever
work
and find
at last that
His work
profit.
own
position.
and
our labour
is
not in vain.
We may die
But
the last
ourselves,
and
see
AA
370
day
EXPOSITORY THOUGHTS.
will assuredly
it
work-
men
to see
them.
stedfast,
immovable,
We may
;
way
heavily,
tears
but
if
58
And now
with
us to
let
self- inquiry
Christ.
Let us ask ourselves whether we know anything by faith ? " Does the
and
we
life
are His ?
Can we
we
of faith in the
to
our
own
them
life,
consideration.
May we
!
never rest
till
we can
give
satisfactory answers
"
He
(1
John
V. 12.)
NOVEMBER,
1860.
J
'
All the Publications in this Catalogue are forwarded by Post, or other conveyance, FREE OF CARRIAGE, by the Publisher, at Ipswich.
A CATALOGUE
OF
PUBLISHED BY
WILLIAM HUNT,
STE-A-iyC I'E/ESS, T-A-"V"EmT
STItEET, II'S'WICII.
By
the Rev.
J. C.
Ryle, B. A,,
especially for Family
Price 7s. in course of Publication Monthly. St. This Work is also kept in half Morocco at an excess of 2s. 6d. per volume; or in extra Morocco binding at 4s. 6d. per volume. Truths. Being miscellaneous Addresses and Tracts, revised and corrected. 5th edition. F'cap 8vo, extra cloth lettered. Illustrated with a tine Engraving of Helmingham Church and Vignette Title. Price '3a. 6d. Second Series. 2nd edition, enlarged. Illustrated with a view of Helmingham Rectoi-y and emblematic Vignette. Price 38. 6d. Third Series. 2ud edition. Illustrated with a view of the Interior of Helminj,'bam Church and Vignette Title. Price 3s. 6d. Fourth Series. With an Engraving of Helmingham Church from the Park (North Side), and A'ignette Title. Price 38. 6d. Fifth Series. With an Engraving of Helmingham Schools and Vignette Title. Price Ss. 6d. Sixth Series. With an Engraving of Exbury Church and Vignette Title. Price 3s. fid. Seventh Series. With an Engraving of St. Thomas's Church, Winchester, and Vignette Title. Price 3s, 6d. * The above Work is also kept in Morocco, Russia, and other elegant Bindings, for presents ; prices and specimens of which will be forwarded on application to
II.
Home
the Publisher.
Addresses to Childrenin fancy Cover, Children Walking in Truth. Little and Wise.
each
One Penny.
No More
Crying.
An
You
Forgriven
Bishop Latimer.
laucy cover, gilt edges. Price 6d. A Lecture delivered before the Church of England Young Men's Society. In tinted wrapper. Price 4d. Baxter and his Times. A Lecture delivered before the Yotmg Men's Christian Association. In wrapper. Price 3d.
with Notes.
Ati
to
be published
eai-ly
in
December.
Published by
W. Hunt,
Ipswich.
Expository Tracts.
from the Gospel of St. Matthew. Price Is. in packet assorted, or each Tract, Sixpence per dozen. CONTENTS. 13. The Blind Men. 1. The Preaching that does Good. 14. The Wedding Garment. 2. Who are Blessed ? 15. The Second Advent. 3. The Law of God.
4.
5.
6. 7. 8. 9.
What is the Lord's Prayer? The Sower and the Ground. The Wheat and the Tares.
Walking on the Wat^r.
16.
17. 18.
19
10. Christ's Transfiguration. 11. Forgiving One Another. 12. The Rich Young Man.
20. The Lord's Supper. 21. Peter's Fall. 22. Christ's Sufferings. 23. Christ's Resurrection. 24. Some of Christ's Last
Words.
Faith's Choice. A Sermon on Heh. xi. 2426. Price 6d. George Whitefleld. A Lecture delivered hefore the Church Youug Men's Society. Price 3d.
of
England
6.
How
Neat wrapper.
for the Chtirch on Earth. Plain Speaking-. First Series. Being 40 short large-type
in Packet, or limp cloth. Is. 9d.
Hymns
P Being Thoughts on Proverbs xxii. Price 3d. each, or 2s. 6d. per dozen.
tracts.
Price
Is.
CONTENTS.
What What
is is
Man? God ?
Pardon
Justification
Take Warning
A New
Birth
The Power of the Holy Ghost We Must be Holy The First Step What are You Waiting For ?
You The Happy Little Girl The Great Battle Be Armed The Cross of Christ How to Read the Bible
I Invite
Calvary
How
What
Are You Born Again ? Caution about Baptism Think for Yourself
Hold Fast
Series.
Is.
in
CONTENTS.
An
A Man
None but
Alive Christ
Free Salvation Gospel Treasures The Royal Family Meetness for Heaven The Man Christ Jesus
The Power of Christ The Gentleness of Christ How shall we Know ? Which Class? Are There Few ? How Long Halt Ye?
May we feel sure ? Is it Good to be Sure? Marks of the Spirit Children of God
Pardoned People
Strong Consolation
Privileges
Backsliders There's a Good Time Coming not Linger These Tracts may he had separately four page Tracts^d. per dozen, eight page Tracts but in quantities not less than 1 dozen of any Tract. 6J. per dozen,
Do
Published by
W. Hunt,
Ipswich.
Begreneration.
6d.
104pp.,
Fcap
Price
sewed
limp cloth,
Sabbath. Tracts.
short Tracts on the Sabhath. taining two copies of each Tract. Price 4d.
One dozen
In packet, con-
CONTENTS. When is God's Sabbath Proshould we keep holy the faned ? Sabbath Day? Sabbath 1 Read This What is the Use of the Be not deceived. How ought we to keep the Sabbath ? Seed Com. Being an assorted Packet of One Hundred Hand-bUls, containing
Why
48 sorts.
Price 8d.
CONTENTS.
You are in Danger What are we ? What do we need 7 What Sin has done
lu what do you Trust?
What
is
your Hope ?
The
Go and Pray Excuses Do you Bead it? Do you love your Bible 7 Join the Church
Come
to Christ
What
He
like?
Something
AVho
for
Everybody
Lasting Peace Hospitals and Asylums The Assizes The Eyes of God Little Sins
A Happy Man
The Last Enemy
You
don't
know
Each Hafid-bill may alio be had separately, price Sixpence per Hundred. Spiritual Songs. Coloss. iii. 6. Being One Hundred Hymns not to be found in the Hymn 13ooks most commonly used. Selected by the Rev. J. C. Ryle.
Eighth enlarged edition, glazed wrapper, Turkey Morocco, 2s. 6d.
9d.,
Is.,
or in
The Bishop, the Pastor, and the Preacher. In Three Biographical With an Introdactory Essay on some of the chief Wants of the Lectures. Church of England in the present day. Extra cloth, price 2s. What is Wanted P Being Thoughts and Suggestions on some of the chief Wants of the Church of England in the present day. Second revised edition.
'
Price 4d.
Young'
Men
Exhorted.
thousand.
Fcap
A Sermon to Young Men. FiftJ: edition, 20th Svo, 68pp. cloth extra, Is.; neat wrapper, 6d. each.
TTNIFOHM SEBXES OF DTJODECIMO TRACTS. At Tno SHILLINGS per Dozen. Are You an Heir P K Question for Everybody. 6th edition, 30th thousand. Are You Forgiven P A Question for Everybody. 12th edition, 60th thousand. Are You Happy P A Question for Everybody. 4th edition, 12th thousand. Are You Holy P A Question for Everybody. 12th edition, 60th thousand. Are You Reg-enerate P A Question for the Times. 6th edition,.30th thousand.
Be Zealous. Thoughts on Gal. iv. 18. 6th edition, 30th thousand. Beware A Warning against Unsound Doctrine. Thoughts on Matthew xvi. 6.
I
A Pastor's Address to his Flock. 4oth thousand. Cross (the). 8th edition, 40th thousand.
9th
edition,
Do You Pray P A Question for Everybody. 22nd edition, 110th thousand. Have You Peace ? A Question for Everybody. 8th edition, 40th thousand. Have You the Spirit P A Question for Everybody. 10th edition, 50th
thousand.
it Holy. A Tract on the Sabbath Day. 6th edition, 30th thousand. Xiivingr or Dead P A Question for Everybody. 20th edition, 100th thousand. liOt's Wife. Being Thoughts on Luke xvii. 32. 4th edition, 20th thousand. None of His ! A Tract on the Work of the Holy Ghost. Thoughts on Horn. viii. 9. 3rd edition, loth thousand. Occupy till I Come. A Tract for the Times. Thoughts on Luke six. 11 13. 4th edition, 20th thousand. Peace ! be Still ! A page from our Lord's history. Thoughts on Mark iv. 3740. tith edition, 30th thousand. Kepent or Perish ! Thoughts on Luke xii. 3. 3rd edition, 15th thousand. Kich and Poor. A Tract for the Times. 6th edition, 30th thousand. Shall be Saved? A Christmas Question. 12th edition, .^Oth thousand. St. Peter at Antioch. A Tract for the Times. 4th edition, 20th thousand. Strive. Thoughts on Luke xvi. 24. 4th edition, 20th thousand. The Reading which is Slessed. Thoughts on Rev. i. l 3. 3rd edition, 16th thousand. Watch ! Thoughts on the Parable of the Ten Virgins. lOth edition, 50th thousand. Wheat or Chaff P A Question for Everybody. 13th edition, O-jth thousand. is Your Hope P A Question for Everybody. 8th edition, 40th thousand. Where are Your SinsP A Question for Everybody. 6th edition, 30th thousand.
Keep
You
What
Word
At ONE SHILLING and SIXPENCE per Dozen. to the Churches. A Tract for the Times. 4th
edition, 20th
tliousand.
Able
to Save.
Thoughts on Heb.
on Matt. xi. 28. Question for Everybody. 4th edition, 20th thousand. Is thy Heart Right ? A Question for 18C0. Thou Lovest is Sick." A Tract for the Sick and Suffering. 3rd edition, 15th thousand. Only One Way. A Tract for the Times. Thoughts on Acts iv. 12. 8th edition. 40th thousand. Prove All Thingrs. A Tract on Private Judgment. 8th edition, 40th thousand.
Do You Confess P A
"He Whom
Rem.ember LiOt. 12th edition, 60th thousajid. Scattered and Quthered. A Tract about the
Jei-.
Jews.
Being Thoughts on
xxxi.
10.
The Church on the Rock. Thoughts on Matthew xvi. 18. 20tli thousand. Where Art Thou P A Question for Everybody. 8th edition, 40th thousand.
At SIXPENCE per Dozen. Are You Asleep P lOth edition, 50th thousand. Are You Ready P loth edition, 50th thousand. I Have Somewhat to Say unto Thee. HHh edition, 80th thousand. A G-uide to Churchmen about Baptism and Regeneration. 3d.
eacli, or 2s. Od.
per dozen.
(2
Assurance.
Do You Want
thousand.
3s.
Tim. iv. 6, 7, 8.) With Notes and Extracts from writers of the 5th edition, revised and corrected. 3s. per dozen. a Friend P A Question for Christmas. Is. per dozen. 4th edition, 20th thousand.
17tb century.
Never Perish.
20th thousand.
(John
4th edition,
6tli edition,
30th thousand.
per dozen.
Living- or
or
2s. fid.
Dead P
per dozen.
3d. each or 2s. 6d. per dozen. each or 2s. 6d. per dozen.
Living or Dead P Rendered into German. Only One Way. Rendered in French. 3d.
M.
A.,
Vicar of BrencMey, Kent. of Mr. John Last, of Otley, SuffolkCloth lettered, Is., or stifl' cover, 8d. Short Practical Sermons for Home. 2nd edition. Cloth, 3s. Family Preacher. CoxTKNTs. 1. Not far from the kingdom of God 2. The power of prayer 3. Search the Scriptures 4. Learn of me 3. The watch-tower 6. The opportunity seized 7. The heart opened 8. Toiling in rowing 9. Arise and eat 10. Occupy till I come 11. What shall we do for the hundred talents? 12. The fallen Dagon set up again 13. The evil tonuue 14. The unavailing disguise Ifi. The backslider warned 15. The midnight cry 17. The sifting-time 18. A way through impossibilities 19. Do it with thy might 20. Plucking out the right eye 21 The contrite comforted 22. The safety-mark 23. The watchers at the cross 24. The great contrast. Scripture Characters. Practical Sermons for Home. 2nd thousand. Cloth
Balaam tampering with sin Balaam reckless in sin Balaam's Micaiah the faithful prophet Hiel the Bethelite Naaman the leper Naamau the healed Naaman's doubtGehazi CalebThe misguided choice Lot in Sodom The intercession The despised warningLot lingering She looked back Saul Manasseh Nehemiah The fiery
Contents.
death
trial.
lettered,
'-in.
fid.
Q-umall's Fxtracts.
Iiarge
Is.
Type Tracts for the Parish, 2-5 for 9d. as well as Hear. 30ih thousand. God's Sabbaths Wasted. I3dth thousand. The Bible is from God. 20th thousand. The Dregs of the Cup. 4fith thousand. The Last Oath. 30th thousand. The Wreck Chart. Dig in the Wall. Gather up the Fragments. What shall Come to Pass Hereafter. One Penny each. On Confirmation. Prove and Hold Fast, \\A. Hints to the Confirmed, with spacp tor Nniiie and Date of Confirmation, 2.5 for Is. Responsibility, or Who Shed this Blood? Id.
Do
Short Prayers for the Farm House. 2d. Friendly Hints for Young: Men. Farm servants and
Threefold Cord that Binds Me to My Church. Church Prayers Heart Prayers, or, Forms not Formal.
Id. Id.
others.
25 for 6d.
BY THE REV.
David
!<vo..
:
E.
J.
MOOR, M.
A.,
F'cap
Letters for the Poor, on Religious Subjects. Third edition. Price 2s. Six Village Sermons, On the Parable of the Prodigal Son. Price Is.
New
Kilitioii.
Picture Parable.
fid.
Illustrated
by thirteen xtra
Cloth extra.
Is. 6d.
Price 28.
Third edition.
Tracts on
per dozen.
\. 2.
Common
Thingrs.
3.
4.
6. 6.
House Clock
Candle Looking Glass
9.
Dwarf
Fire Place
10. 11.
Painted Post
12.
The Public Feast The Doctor The Babe The Kite String The Muddy Pond The Strong Shoes
3s.
"SCRIPTUEE EXPOSITOR"
FIRST SERIES.
C.
HOLLAND,
M.A.,
W. Cadman,
m.a.,
Incumbent of
St. George's,
Southwark.
W. Champneys,
Rector of
St.
Mary's Whitechapel.
Chapel, St. John's Wood, London.
Rev. G. Fisk,
Rev. F. Storr, Vicar of Brenchley, Kent. Rev. C. B. Tayler, Rector of Otley, Suffolk.
Contents The unfruitful fig tree spared another yearThe judgment of The ships broken atKziou-Geber Achan a warning to sinners Martha and Jacob Wrestling Onesiphorus The widow of Nain The PassoverThe Syrophoenician's prayer Sinners called to repentance The cities of refuge The day of Pentecost The brazen serpent The Lord's Supper Christ preaching at Nazareth Elijah's request to Elisha The separation day The Christian's duty in troublous times Gideon Saints in glory Manoah "The strong man of sin Present sufferings and future glory The last words of David.
:
5lai-y^
man's disobedienceTTie The creation The Sabbath dayThe The judgment of Adam and Eve Man accepted by faith The murder of AbelEnoch walking with GodThe world before the Hood Noah finding grace Noah saved in the Ark The rainbow The building of Babel The call of Abraham Abraham a stranger in the Land of Promise .\brahnm justified by faith The covenant of circumcision Abraham pleading for Sodom Lot's son-in-law Lot's wife Just Lot delivered Abraham reproved by Abimelech
Vol.
I.
second series.
first
Contents:
Genesis
Abraham
offering
up
Isaac.
VoL H. second series. Contents: Genesis Hagar and Ishmael Abraheim's servants-Jacob and Esau Esau selling his birth-right Jacob's visionJacob serving Laban Jacob preparing to meet PJsau Jacob returned to Bethel Joseph hated by his brethrenJoseph in Egypt Joseph exalted Joseph declaring himself to his brethren The last days of Jacob.
Exodus The birth of MosesMoses' choiceMoses and the burning bush The return of Moses to EgyptMoses and Aaron before PharaohThe plagues of EgyptThe passover 'The passage of the Israelites The song of Moses Manna in the WUdemess The rock that followed Israel. THE SCRIPTURE EXPOSITOR. Vol. III. second series. Contents: ExodusThe uplifted handsJethro, priest of Midian 'The covenant of Sinai The commandmentThe second commandmentThe third commandment The fourth commandmentThe fifth commandmentThe sixth commandment
first
Published by W. Hunt, Ipswich.
The seventh commandmeut The eighth commandment^The ninth commandment The tenth commandmentThe altar of earthThe servant's ear bored Capital crimes Sundry laws The angel of His presence Offerings for the The altar of burnt tabernacle The Holy of Holies The golden candlestick offerings The high Priest's dress The golden calf.
Show me thy glory. Leviticus The burnt offeringThe meat offering the peace offeringThe sin and trespass offering Nadab and Abihu The law^ of leprosy The gr.eat day of atonement The day of JubUee The curse and the blessing. Numbers The pillar of cloud and fireMoses' in^^tation to HobabThe mnrmurings of the Israelites Miriam's envy and Moses' meeknessThe good and evil reportThe rebellion of Korah The brazen serpent The way of Balaam Balaam's prophecy. DeuteronomyThe law repeated^The duty of reflectionThe prophet like nnto Moses War.
.
Vol. IV.
second series.
Contents :
Moses
on the tribesThe death and JoshuaRahab the harlotCrossing the Jordan ^The taking of JerichoThe sin of Achan The Gibeonites' craftThe sun standing The division of Canaan The altar of the ReubenitesJoshua's last words. Judges The angel's visit to Bochim Ehud and Eglon Jael and SiseraThe call of Gideon Gideon's victoryAbimelechJephthah's vow.
THE SCRIPTURE EXPOSITOR. Vol. V. second series. Contents : DeuteronomyThe basket of first-fruits The curses of Israel fulfilled The curse on Israel removed Life and good, death and evil Moses' last song
Moses blessing the twelve
chai-acter of
tribes
The blessings
Moses.
still
SamsonMicah and
Vol. XI.
Ruth Ruth.
1 Samuel Hannah's prayer Hannah's thanksgiving Eli's sons The call of Tlje ark of God and the Philistines Ebenezer The request for a kingSaul among the prophets The good and the ri^ht way Saul's first act of disobedienceJonathan and his armour-bearer -Saul s second act of disobedience The anointing of David David and Goliath Saul's jealousy of David David pui-sued by Saul Nabal and Abigail Saul and the witch of Endor David greatly
Samuel
distressed.
the ark of
rebellion
proved by Nathan
David
1
David chastened The banished one restored Absalom s David's restoration Satisfaction for the GibeonitesLast words of David numbering the people. Kings The last days of David Solomon's wisdom The qusen of Sheba Solomon's RehoboamJeroboamThe disobedient man of GodBaasha and
fall
SamuelDavid lamenting Saul's death David mourns for Abner Uzzah and GodDavid desires to build a house to GodDavid's fallDavid re-
Vol. VII.
second series.
Contents:
other kings.
2 Chronicles (Part 2.)
The
Temple
'of
Solomon
Asa's
reign, (Part
I.)
Asa's reign,
Vol. VHL second series. Contents : Elijah and the widow of Zarephath Elijah and the Prophets of Baal again seven times Elijah's request for death Ahab and Bcn-hadad Ahab and Naboth's Vineyard .Vhab and Micaiah.
Elijah taken up to heaven Miracles of Elisha Elisha and the 2 Kings Moabites Elisha and the Shunammite^Naamanthe Syrian The siege of Samaria JezebelJehu's zeal for the LordThe Captivity of IsraelJosiah. 2 Chronicles JehoshaphatJoash and Jehoiada Amaziah Hezekiah's good reign Hezekiah's sickness and prayer ManassehThe captivity of Judah.
Go
Separate Volumes price 3s. each.
or the
Kings
Work
The Series of Eight Volumes in cloth, 21s., complete, Nine Vols. 24s.
^tltdxau from
23, Holies Street,
il^t
'nhlmixaxx% of
Row,
24, Paternoster
AND SOLD BY
PLUCKLEY TEACTS,
1.
(On Scripture
2s.
Characters.)
M. A.
The Son of
The Forfeited
In-
19.
Samuel;
or,
heritance.
2.
many
20.
;
Prayers.
3.
Enoch;
or, a close
;
walk with
21.
4. 5.
6.
God. Methuselah
grimage.
;
Saul or, Misery in the midst of Greatness. David; or. The Man after God's own heart. (12 for
Is. 4d.)
Solomon
;
or,
degraded.
23. Elijah
or,
7.
Man
The
Unhappy
24. 25. 26.
27.
of God.
;
Elisha
or.
ex-
8.
alted.
Hezekiah;
King.
The good
The Royal
9.
The Wrestler
Manasseh
Joseph
Daniel
;
or.
Penitent.
or.
Joseph or, The Secret of True Prosperity. Job or, The Blessing of
;
The
Eight
28.
Moses;
Affliction. or,
the
Faithful
29.
Guide.
God. Shadrach,
15.
16.
Pharaoh or. The Gradual Hardening of the Heart. Balaam or, The Empty Wish. Joshua or, The Pious
;
30. 31.
Officer.
Samson
or,
panion in the Midst of Danger. Jonah or. The Withered Gourd. Belshazzar or, The Handwriting on the Wall.
; ;
Nehemiah;
Euth
;
or,
The Mourner
Comforted.
Haman;
or. Mistaken Kind18. Eli ness. *^* The Tracts may also be assorted at the reduced rate of 25 for Is. 4rf. By the same Author. Portraits from the Bible. Scripture Characters from the Old Testament. Fcp. Hvo. 3s. Plain Prayers for Family Use. Second Edition. Fcap, cloth, 2s. 6d. Pathway of Safety; or, Counsel to the Awakened. Twenty-fourth thousand.
2s. (id.
'Slorocco, 5s.
(id.
:
The Pastoral
:
Office
and Prospects.
3s. 6d.
Sickness in old Age in Heaven. Prayers For a Family For Private Use For a Sick Person. The Earnest Communicant. A Course of Preparation for the Lord's
Labouringr Man's Book. 158pp. cloth, price Is. 6d. CoNTKNTS The Labourer in his Youth Marriedin the Management of his Children at his Work in his Home in the world in his Church in
Table.
Cloth,
Is.
morocco,
;
2s. fid.
Cottage Sermons or. Plain Words to the Poor. In two series, each, 2s. Abridgement of the Sunday Services: a Simple Plan for effecting it.
Short Services
for
6d. 6d.
Barham
cloth.
4d.
N'os.
Cottag-e Readings.
Price 3s. 6d.
The Barham
Edition. Price 3d., or 2s. per dozen. Price 3s., in packet. Tracts complete. Nos. 1 to 49. Bonnd in
Fervent Prayer. Second edition. Price Is. 6d. A Prayer for my Church and Parish. Id. A Servant's Morning: and Evening' Prayer. Confirmation or, Are you ready to Serve Christ?
;
per dozen.
WORKS BY
Plain
G.
W. MYLNE.
being Nos.
1
Words
and Aged:
to 48 of
"Plain Tracts
in Larpe Type."
Children of the Old Testament. 18mo. Cloth, 2s., with Ensravings. Contexts -.The Child .MosesThe Child SamuelThe Child Mephibo.sheth The Child AbijahThe Children at BethelThe Shunammite's SonThe
Child Joash.
Educational Revieic.
or Lessons for the Christian's Daily Walk. Second Edition. 2s. healthy, the inferences are plain, and eminently practical. " A work of great practical value." Christian Lady's Mag.
'
Fear Not.'
18.)
Third edition.
:
Prayers, in the simplest form, for the use of Sick Persons. Specially adapted for Patients in Hospitals. Second thousand. 12mo. Large type. Stiff Covers. 6d. Family Prayers, in the Simplest Langoiage. Fourth edition. Large
plain type.
3d.
Intercessory Prayer: its Duties and The Sick Room or, Meditations and
Fourth edition.
Is.
Thoughts
for Spare
Moments at Sea. A Series of Short and plain In Packet, price 4d., or cloth limp, fid.
By
the same Author: Plain Tracts in Iiarge Type. In Fackets, price 9d. each.
CONTENTS OF PACKET I. Are you not a Sinner ? Sinner, there's a Saviottr. Do you know what you worship ? Praying in Spirit. The Tables of Stone, and Tables of Flesh.' Bom again. " Where is he ? " Rising from the Dead. "The Books were opened." Prayers for those who are beginning to think. Believing witli the Heart. The Bereans or, True Nobility. CONTENTS OF PACKET II. How do vou bear your Trials? Which was happy?
;
Prayers in Sickness for the Children of God. Helps to prayer. Godly sorrow Comforted. Filthy Garments taken away. A Few Thoughts about the Holy Spirit. The Lord's Supper. The Lord's Day. Thou, God, Seest me. Tea, Yea, Nay, Nay. The Lost ;lxe-head.
CONTENTS OF PACKET
III. The Lord will Provide. Long have you been Sick? Is your Foot upon the Ladder? The Candlesticks and the Two Olivetrees. The Ethiopian Convert. Words from the heart. I Hope you never Tell Lies. The Paralytic Man. Jonah in the Ship. Jonah inside the Great
How
Fish. Jonah in Nineveh. Jonah in the Booth. CONTENTS OP PACKET IV. Christian Tempers or, the Meekness of Wisdom. Living Bread and Living Waters. Lying Vanities. The Young Man whose Eyes were Opened. The Flying Roll. The Man whose Eyes were Put Out. Enoch or, Do you walk with God ? What Master do you serve ? The Eyes Twice Opened. The Two Crucified Thieves. Paul and Silas in Prison. The Man whom the King delighted to Honour. CONTENTS OF PACKET v. What is your Burden? Vain Excuses. Why is thy Countenance Sad? The day of Small Things. Lodging within Jerusalem. Daniel in the Lion^' Den. The Works that God requires. Paul the Tent Maker. Wash you, and Make you clean. God Keeping Silence. The Death of Aaron. Mauaen, Herod's Foster-brother. CONTENTS OF PACKET VI. The Advocate with the Father. The Man with the Inkhom. On Learning to Think. Cleansing the Leper. The Famine in Samaria. Has God Forgotten your Sin ? or, Saul and the Gibeonites. Why God is to be praised. How to Work and to Fight at the same time. The Man of God that came from Judah. The second death. Fellowship with God. Christ will come again. Each Tract can be had separately, in any quantity, Id. each; or 9d. per dozen.
; ;
;!
10
Also,
"I
the same, Plain "Words for Wayfariner Men. A Series of Short Papers. Nos. 1 to 24, in a packet, 3d. ; or cloth, 6d. am a Working Man : I have no time to Pray." Do you know that you are a Sinner ? Have you got a Bible ' How do you begin the day ? Thoughts of Halting between two opinions. Times of Ignorance. The Leper Peace. Cleansed. The Sabbath Breaker. The Drunkard Reformed. Good News from The Leprosy. The way to Read the Bible. " Have you a New a Far Country Heart?" On Swearing. On Telling Lies. " I dont get on.'' " Saul, Saul, why Persecutes! thou me ?" Afonday Morning. Young Man beware of Drink Young Woman beware of Dress. The Serpent of Brass. The Broad Boad.
by
The Book
of Family Prayer : A Course of Original Prayer for every Morning and Evening in the Year: arranged in the Order of the Ecclesiastical Year. By Clergymen of the Church of England. Edited bv Rev. C. J. Goodhar^ and Rev. C. Holloway. Third edition. 4to. pp. 956. Cloth. 25s. Daily Devotions for Young' Persons; consisting of Counsels on Prayer, with Morning and Evening Prayers for a Fortnight; and others for special
occasions.
Is. 6d.
cloth.
Hymns.
8vo.
8d.
Hymns
Family Prayers. By Rev. A. Oxenden and Rev. C. H. Ramsden. 2s. 6d. Family Prayers, in the Simplest Language. Large Type. By G. W. :Mylne. 3d, Family Prayers for a Fortnig'ht, with occasional Additions, a Selection
of appropriate
By H.
N.
Champney.
Is.
suitable to
every
By Rev.
A. Toplady.
is. (id.
for a Week. 3d. for Passion Week. 6d. Infant Altar; or Hymns and Prayers, in exceedingly simple Language, intended for vei-y young Children. Is. Manual of Short Prayers for Private Devotion. By Rev. Abner w. Brown. 6d.: cloth. Is. Plain Prayers for Everyday Use. Royal 32mo. Cloth, Id. Paper, Id. Prayer lAi. " O God give me grace," &c. 32mo. Card. Id. Prayer for Morning- and Evening. Stiff cloth, id. Prayer for Morning and Evening. On a Card. Id. Prayer for 1860. By Rev. J. C. Rvi.e. Is per 100, or 2d. per dozen. Prayers for Every IJay in the Week ; for the use of Week-day and Sunday Schools. ByE. H. 4d. Prayers for India, id. Prayers for Inquirers of all Classes ; and for Believers in Many States of Mind. By G. W. MYI.XE. Cloth, 2s. (id. Prayers for the Chamber of Sickness. By T. B. V. 8vo., cloth, is. 6d.
Prayers Selected from the Liturgy of the Church of Eng-land. Desiiriied for Family Worship. By Rev. Dennis Browne. 4d., cloth, 6d.
Prayers for Little Children. By Rev. w. w. Champneys. 2d. Prayers for a Child, Morning and Evening. By the late Rev. John F'ry. 2d. Private Devotions at the Psalmist's Hours of Prayer. Designed
chiefly for seasons of trial.
2s.
Private Prayers for the use of Children, with daily Texts for a Month. Id. Private Prayers for Cottagers. By Rev. A. Oxenden. Id., or 25 for Is. 4d. Cottage Family Prayers. By Rev. A. Oxenden. 2d., or Is. 4d. per dozen. Scriptural Prayers, Designed for Family Worship, with Introductory Remarks on Forms of Prayer, and an exhortation to more general Prayer. 9d.
without the TJxhortation, 4d.
Short Prayers for Cottagers. Fcap. id. Short Prayers for the Use of the Cottager and his Family. Square 18mo. Short Prayers for Every Day in the Week; to be used either in Family or in Private. By Rev. R. Shepherd. 2d., or Is. 6d. per dozen. Ten Prayers for Children and Young Persons. Id.
3d.
the
11
God
in his House.
Pric&
Id.
By
the
same Author.
Sabbath Selling:, and What is the End of it. Id., or 25 for Is. 4d. Sabbath Buying, and What is Lost by it. id., or 25 for is. 4d. "O Yes I go to Chtixch Sometimes." By the Author of "The Idle
;
Comer."
Id.,
or 25 for
Is.
4d.
Buyers or Sellers
Is. 9d.
Id.
2d.,
or 12 for
" or, a Word of Warning to Five Million Souls ; or in quantities of not less than 100, 4s. or, Go to Churcli Regularly, and you won't like to miss.
;
Come
Next Sunday How shall I Spend next Sunday Id. The Lord's-Day or, Christian Sabbath. Why it must be kept holy, and How.
!
How
By
3s.
per
Life. loo.
2d.
for Is. 9d.
?
Sunday P
Id.,
or
2,5
the Rev.
I). J.
Pattekson.
;
I/Eake the
Most of
;
Great Hiches
2:5
or,
What
Id.,
or
What
the Village Weathercock likes to See and gregation. Id., or 25 for Is. 9d.
Clergyman
to his Parishioners.
Id.
Sabbath in Piedmont.
Holiness to the Lord;
Kdition in large type.
Common
God.
Prayer
or
<-s.
An Address
100.
or Hints to Church-goers, from their Minister. New 23rd thousand. 4pp. 4s. per 100. On Card, Id. to the Silent Worshipper in the House of
Id.,
per
the Rev. R.
Shepherd, M.A.
Id.,
A
'
or 25 for
Id.,
Is. 4d.
Call to the
or 25 for
House of God,
Is.
and a
Word on
the Sabbath.
By the
same,
Is. 4d.
Come
The Lord's Sign.' A Tract on the Sabbath for the People. 2d. The Sabbath Whose is it? By the Rev. G. A. Rogers. Id., or 25 for Is. 4d. Sunday Robberies A Tract on Sunday Pleasure-taking. Id. Keep it Holy! A Tract on the Sabbath-day. By Rev. J. C. RYi.e, B.A. 2d. Also, One Dozen Short Tracts on the Sabbath, in packet. By the Rev. J. C.
:
to Church.
per
100.
Ryi,e,B.A.
,1.
Price 4d.
The Sunday Question considered in the Light of Holy Scripture. By the KiDD. 3d. Rev. W. The Sabbath made for Man. A Sermon. By the Rev. C. D. Bell. 3d. Sunday Recreations a few Questions to be Considered before we begin
;
The Sabbath was Made for Man. The Substance of a Sermon. By the Rev. W. Wkbstkh, M.A. 4d., or 2s. tjd. per dozen. 'Will a Man Rob God?' A Question for the Members of the National
Sabbath League, and others.
them.
Bv
the Rev. D.
MooRR, M.A.
3d,,
By
2d.
Words
The Lord's Day and the Working Classes. 6d. per dozen. of Warning on the Neglect of Public worship. Id., or 25 for Is. 4d. The Sabba'th a few thoughts on its Principle and Spirit. By the Rev. C.
:
D. Makston.
Id.,
Id.
An Address by
Rev. L.
MooRE.
per
12
WiUiam Hunt,
Ipstciok.
ON BAPTISM.
Hath
this Child been already Baptized or P or, Friendly Instruc tious to Parents about to bring their (Jbildreu to Baptism. By the Author of " Your Place in Church is Empty." 2d., or Is. 6d. per dozen. Parents God's Nurses, a (iift at the Font. By the Kev. F. Mouse, M.A. 2d. " I Can't find it in the Bible." (Infant Baptism.) Id., or 25 for Is. 4d. Short Catechism, exphiuatory of the Questions and Answers on Baptism in the Catechism of the Church of England. By the Kev. B. Eichinos. Id., or 25 for Is. 6d. Faithful Sponsor : a Village Dialogue concerning the Duties of God-
No
A
A
The
Price IJd.
Sponsor's Duties
a (Jard.
Id.
On
or, a
Kind Words to the Flock about Infant Baptism. Infant Baptism and Confirmation. Id.
ON CONFIRMATION.
Confirmation
:3d.,
;
or,
By
the Rev. A.
Oxknden.
Devotional Examination
of the Order for that Solemnity as Prescribed in the Book of Common Prayer. By Rev. O. Wellfoud. 3d. Confirmation; or, Whom will you serve. Id. Confirmation; What is it? Some Conversation on the Subject between
Id. or, VfixaX is your Motive ? Ministerial Letter to a ; Id. Confirmation ; or, A Scene from the Organ Gallery. Price Id. Confirmation. By Rev. C. Holland. Id. Confirmation ; or. Thoughts for a Solemn Hour. Price Id.
Plain People.
Confirmation
Parishioner.
Young
An Address on Confirmation.
By D. AIeredith, M.A. lid, or 10s. per 100. Confirmation. Catechism for Candidates. Compiled from Lectures. By Uev. T. Vores. IHmo. ;id. Confirmation Memoranda; or, Things to be Remembered. 6d. per dozen,
or
:3s.
per hundred.
;
Kind Words to the Flock about Confirmation. Id., or 5s. per 100. The New Covenant or, Self-dedication at Confirmation Id. Three Plain Reasons why you should be Confirmed. By the of "How shall I come to the Table of the Lord?" ,&c. Id.
Confirmation;
Harrison.
or,
Author
The Citizen of Zion taking up his Freedom. By Rev. Canon Chami-neys, M.A. 3d. Confirmation. An Address to Parents and Young Persons. By Rev. W.
Id.
Plain Remarks on Confirmation. By E. w. Michell, B.C.L. Id. Confirmation. Seven Plain Paragraphs for Candidates. 8d. per dozen. Decision of Ruth; An Example to the Young, especially to those who come forward as Candidates for Confirmation. By Kev. G. Cole. 18mo. Is. An Instruction preparatory to Confirmation. By Rev. W. Meara. 2d. Manual of Confirmation, with Explanation of the Church Catechisin,
the Contirniation Service, and the Articles of Religion Hymns, Prayers, &c. By Kev. W. Stone. 8d.
The Rite of Confirmation. " Prove all things." Price IJd. The Spring-ing TJp of the Willows; or, The Devotion of
By Hev. J. S. Serjeant, 2d. Lectures to Candidates for Confixmation.
Heart to God.
M..\.
the Youthful
By Rev.
G. R. Moncrieff,
4d.
Confirmation. A Dialogue. By the same Author. Price Id. Confirmation Questions. By the same. Jd Confirmation Records. By the same. Is. 6d. The Church Catechism, broken into simple Questions, for the use of Persons preparing for Confirmation. By Rev. William Tait. 3d. An Address to a Young Person on the subject of Confirmation. By Rev.
Do you
A A
Canon Wooduooffe. Id. intend to give yourself to God P or, a Pastor's Appeal to the Young of his Flock at the Season of Confirmation. By the Rev. W. W. WooDiiousR, M. A. 2d. Short Catechism on Confirmation. By Rev. Arch. Hone. 3s. per 100. Short Catechism on Confirm.ation. By Rev. J. K. Xuckeu, 2d.
The Vow Confirmed. Plain address to young persons before confirmation. The Vow Renewed, and Battle Foug-ht. By Rev. B. L. Witts.
Cloth
tid.
;
2d.
3d.
The
paratory to Confirmation.
Soldier trained for the Conflict or, Ten Scripture Lessons preWith Preface, by Rev. W. Maksh, D.D. 3d.
Cards, with 9d. per dozen.
Confirmation Admission
Candidate, &c., &c.
Church,
Name
of
"How
How
my
ALord
Id.,
Supper.
2-j
Id.
Friendly Advice on the Lord's Supper. By Rev. Rich. Shepherd. Id. Plain and Short Instructions on the Sacrament of the Lord's Supper with an Address to Different Characters. By Hev. J. B. Bukxett. 3d. Charles Melbourne or, Am I fit to come to the Lord's Table ? Id. The Christian Feast. By Henrietta M. Lutwidge. 2d. I am Not Fit or, A Common Excuse for Neglecting the Lord's Supper. Id.
; ;
ON PURITY.
The
and
Tract on a too Common Sin, addressed to Parents and Masters, A Plain to Youth and Servants.
Id.
By J.
C.
Poor Mary.
Bitter as Wormwood. Id. Flee from It A Caution, suggestedbyreadingGen. xxxiv. 2d.,or ls.9d. per doz. Honest Advice to Young Englishmen, from a Friend. Id., or 9d. per dozen. Kind Words to the Young Women of England, on a very Serious Subject. Bv a Lady. Id., or 9d. per dozen. Matrimonial: being the Life of Jane Newhammer, of Manchester. 3d. Mother's Care for her Daughter's Safety. Id., or 9d. per dozen. New Grave, (The). A True Story. 2o for Is. 4d.
:
32mo.
Commandment
Word
condemned
in the
A Word
of Warning, and a
Young Men
By
Id.
l^d., or 10s. 6d. per 100. or, a Word of Warning against their Sin.
By a Clergyman.
MISCELLANEOUS
Something to Amuse You.
NEW
WORKS.
A book for the Young. VVith Frontispiece. By Hakkikt d'Oyly Howe, authoress of "Stories for my Sunday Scholars," " The Old Missionary Box," " The Little Girl in White," &c. &c. Our Covenant God. By Rev. G. E. Winslow, Vicarof Tugby. .58. "Behold:" being some passages of Holy Scripture, in which God arrests the attention'of man. By Rev. Philip Bennett Power, M.A., Incumbent of Christ Church, Worthing. Author of the " I wills of the Psalms," " Breathings of the Soul," "Failure and discipline," &c. Price Is. Illustrative Gatherings For Preachers and Teachers. A manual of Anecdotes, Facts, Figures, Prrjverbs, Quotations, &c. Adapted for Christian Teaching. By Rkv. G. S. Bowes. Fcap., cloth. 5s. Home; or, the Gospel in the Parable: an Earthly Story with a The Heavenly Meaning. By the Ret. Cuables Bullock, Rector of St. Nicholas, Ninth thousand. Is. Worcester.
Way
14
Short Sketch of Isaac S., with occasional notes from a DisPrice Is. fid. Clerical Reading' Being Suggestions on the Reading of the Liturgy, with Examples of Misplaced Emphasis in the Reading of the Scriptures, and'on the Composition and Delivery of Sermons. By H. N. Champney. Cloth. Is. The Higrh Priesthood of Christ. By the Author of" English Synonymes." Dedicated by permission to the Archbishop of Dublin. Fcap cloth limp. Is. The Words She "Wrote ; or, The Blood-stained Leaf. A true story of two Highlanders at Lucknow. By the Rev. B. L. Witts. ISmo. 2nd edition. Is. Darkness and Light; or, brief Memorials of two Blind Deaf Mutes with facts relating to the origin of Moore's System of Reading for the Blind. Illustrated with embossed specimens. By Mrs. W. Fison. 12mo. 6d. do the Servants of the 19th Century Dress as they do? Dlustrated by incidents from real life. 8vo. 6d. do the Ladies of the 19th Century Dress as they do? Illustrated by incidents from real life. 18mo. 6d. Thoughts For All Seasons In Prose and Verse. By the late John Mason Good, M.D., &c. &c. With a short Biographical Sketch. ]8mo. Cloth. Is. 6d.
!
Happy Now
Why Why
Limp
Is.
By E.
S. A.
World in
I Live," &c.
Part I. The Earlv History of the British Isles, la. Part II.The Dark Ages of the British Isles. Is. The Reformation of the British Isles. Is. Pai-t III. Rememhrances of Two Little Sisters Who Went Together to Few Heaven. Edited by their :Mother. 2s. Where They Led Him. A Tale for Boys. By M. A. And Mis'takes, Harry's Parkott. 18mo. Cloth. Is.
Hymns, by Rev. Charles Kemble, M.A., Rector of Bath. 3rd arranged in short score, by John Gledhill. Assoc. R.A.M.
;
Or, The Blood-stained Leaf. A true and touching Young Lady and Two Highlanders at Lucknow. Eighth Thousand.
Also,
;
Willy Reynolds
Is.
(The Trumpeter Boy) and his Father. A Sequel to the By Rev. B. L. Witts, M.A. 2s., separately
Or,
By H.
S.
E.
6d., or
limp
England's Church The Practical Recognition of them shown to be Unscriptural, Unreasonable, and Civilly aud Ecclesiastically Unlawful. By Lex Anglicana. Cloth 2s. 6d. Prayers. Bv the Author of "The Listener." Second edition. F'cap 8vo. Is. "Times of Refreshing" to the Church of Christ. (Sketches of Church History.) By Rev. R. Meek, Rector of Sutton Bounington. Cloth Ss. Memorials of an Indian Missionary; or, A Memoir of the Rev. Mu-hael Wilkinson, Missionai-y, C.M.S. Compiled by a Member of his Family, with Selections from his Published Works, and Letters from Native Converts. With Introduction bv Rev. R. Whytehead, m.a. F'cap. 48. 6d. Glimpses of Grace and Glory. Sermons by Rev. C. J. Goodhart. Fcap
8vo.
Cloth.
3s. 6d.
of The Vine. By the Author of " Old Peter Pious," &c., &c. ]8mo. Cloth. Is. Relation and to Home and Foreign Evangelization, Colportage : Its History By Mrs. with some Remarks on the Wants and Prospects of our Country. 8 5s. Crown vo. William FisoN. Manual on the Inspiration of Scripttire. By Rev. C. Dallas Mauston, Incumbent of Christ Church, Dover. Cloth. 28. fid. " Hea'ven Otir ;" or, Memorials o^ Sarah C. Gathered chiefly from her own Letters. 9d. Thoughts in "Verse for the Hard Working and Suffering. Price 2d., 2nd edition of ."XXIO. or V>s. per 100 and in Cloth, price 4d. Shadows of Jesus. Sunday Readings for Children on the Personal Types of cloth. 2s. 6d. Fcap. Christ. Lord Jesus the " I W'ill." Being the determinations of the man of God, as found in some of * the " I wills of the Psalms. By the Rev. P. B. Power, Incumbent of Christ Church, Worthing. 5s. Extra cloth.
Home
15
Reflected Truth.; or, The Image of God, Lost in Adam, Eestored in Jesus Christ. By the Kev. Edwaud Gikdlestone, m.a., Canon of Bristol, Rector of
Wapley, Gloucestershire.
:
Price
4s. fid.
Life.
By
Bolton.
Royal 16rao.
Armagreddon;
Children's Bible Lessons or. Type and Anti-type. By Harriet A. D. Thorn. 18mo. Cloth, la. 6d. or, A Warning Voice from the last Battle-field of Nations, proclaiming by the Mouths of Prophets and Apostles, that the close of the Times
of the Gentiles, the Second Personal Advent, and Millennial Reign of our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ, are nigh at hand. In 3 vols. 8vo, with Appendix. By a Master of Arts of the University of Cambridge. 3.
Rogers, Incunil)ent of
or, The Gospel in the life of Gideon. St. Luke's Holloway. Crown 8vo.
Fragrments of the Great Diamond, Set for Young Children Being a variety of Addresses to Children. By Rev. J. Bolton, M.A., Kilburn. 2ud
Edition, 18mo., cloth.
Is. (id.
Heaven'ward Thoughts
for Christian Households. Being Reflections for By D. O. H. With Preface Daily Use, on a "Family's Texts for the Year." by Rev. Canon Champneys, Rector of Whitechapel. 3s. Being Recollections of Sermons preached by Rev. T. liOvingr Cotmsels. Vores.M.A., St. Mary's, Hastings. By a Member of the Congregation. Crown 8vo. Second edition. Revised by the Preacher. Cloth, 4s. 6d. Lessons of Life for Female Domestics. By Grandfather Gray. F'cap 8vo. Cloth, 4s. This volume abounds with suggestions for the moral guidance and encouragement of servants, is especially adapted for a present to young females about to leave school and home for service, and will be found an interesting addition to domestic libraries. Landmarks of Faith. Chapters intended for the Comfort of the Doubting, the Fearful, and the Bereaved. By Rev. W. S. Lewis, Incumbent of Trinity Church, Ripon. Small 8vo., cloth, 2s. 6d. Gospel Unities. Practical Remarks on Eph. iv. 4 6. By Rev. J. Richardson, M..\., Incumbent of St. Mary's, Bury St. Edmund's. 12mo. 2s. Life in Itstly and France in the Olden Time. By J. Campbell Colqohoun, Esq. 8vo., cloth. lOs. 6d. Contents I. Girolamo Savonaroa. II. Olympia Morata. IH. Marguerite d'Angouleme. IV. Jeanne d'Albret, Queen of Navarre. The Christian Visitor's Companion. A Manual containing Scripture Intended chiefly for those Readings, with Expositions, Prayers, and Hymns. who visit where, through physical or other causes, the public means of grace are unattainable. By Rev. A. N. Beamish, B. A. Post 8vo., cloth, 4s. 6d. Christ is All. By the Venerable Archdeacon Law. The Gospel of the Old Testament. Genesis, Exodus, Leviticus, Numbers, and Deuteronomy, each, 3s. Little Annie; or, Is Church Time a Happy Time? 18mo. Is. 6d. Scripture Portions, with Prayers for Invalids. By Elizabeth Maria Lloyd.
Is.
Cloth.
The Little ChildThe Race David and Goliath The Gospel Net Vineyard Work The Four Little Things Zaccheus The Little Captiva Maid The Prodigal Son The Gospel FeastThe Two Hea Little Samuel. Sxinday School Addresses. By the same Author. 2nd Series. Contexts: The Young Soldier of ChristThe Child's Invitation Idols Seed Time and HarvestThe The History of Joseph ditto (continued) Lessons Good News for Children The Wonderful Present Palm Tree and The Way to be HappyYouthful Hossannasthe Gospel Lad. With
Contents
:
-ts
2s.
its
engravings.
Glimpses of Heaven
year.
or,
Evening Meditations
S.
for every
Sunday in the
32mo., cloth,
gilt edges. Is. 6d. ; cloth, limp. Is. or, The History of Adjai, the
Crowther,
With
Study in the Gospel History of the Life of our Lord,: consisting of forty-two cards, accompanied by Mimpriss's Chart of our Lord's Life and Ministry. 4s. 6d. The Bible Student's Guide to the More Correct Understanding of the Pluglisb Translation of the Old Testament, by reference to the Original Hebrew. By the Rev. W. Wilson, D.D. 4to., cloth, 2 2s. calf, interleared, 3. Brothers and the Two Paths. By the Rev. P. B. Poweb. Is. 6d.
Evening
Home
or. Social
The Two
Breathings of the Soul. By the Eev. P. B. Power, Failure and DiBCipline. By the Bev. P. B. Power. Protoplast. A Series of Papers. Second Edition. In
fid.
cloth, 8d.
Is. 6d.
1
Contents: The First Matter The First Day The First Man The First Blessing The First Sabbath The First Law The First Sleep, &c., &o. Ooads and Nails ; or. Missionary Counsels and EncouraKements for the Young. Selected and Edited by the Kev. J. Montagu Kandali.. Is. 6d. The Footprints of Jesus. By the same. Vols. 1 and 2, each. Is. 6d. Thirza or, the Attractive Power of the Cross. Translated from the German
;
fid.
Nineteenth Edition.
6d.
Cloth, Is.
Grospel Tracts by Mrs. P. H. GossE. In Packets of 100 assorted. Is. fid. Scripture Stories for Children. By Miss Parrott. Two Packets, each coutaining Twelve Stories, with Illustratrations. Price Is. Forty-Eight Missionary Stories for Children. By Harriet d'Oyly Howe. In Packet, each Story Illustrated by an Engraving. Price Is. Twenty-Four Stories for Sunday Scholars. By Harriet d'Oyly Howe. In Packet, each book Illustrated. Price Is. Wertheim's Illustrated Re'ward Cards. With Questions on back. First, Second, and Third Series. Each Packet price fid. Scripture Questioning" Cards, for the use of private Families and Sunday Schools. The Questions in a distinct book and enclosed in Packet. Price Is. fid. Reward Pictures, Illustrating the Book of Proverbs. In Packet. Price Is. Wertheim's Packets of Assorted Tracts. Series First, Second, and
Third.
Each
2s.
Reward Sooks
12
for Children.
3s. fid.
Con-
Two-penny Books.
Is. (Id.
Four-penny Books.
Assorted.
Packets.
By Eevds. W. Marsh, D.D., C. D. Charlton, R. Burnet, H. Geldart, and others. No. 1. Prayer (for the Holy Spirit) A Prayer Is. 9d. per 100. Ia. a Child's Prayer A Prayer Is. 9d. per 100. 2. Prayer for the Young Prayer for Conversion 2s. fid. per 100 3a. Prayer in sickness 3s. fid. per 100. 4. A Plain Prayer The Prayer of a Soul in Earnest 3s. fid. per 100. 5. A Prayer of a Sinner to the Saviour 3s. fid. per 100. 6. Prayer for the Poor and Aged 3s. fid. per 100. 7. Morning Prayer for a Family (in Scripture Language.) 3s. fid. per 100. 8. Evening Prayer for a Family (in Scripture Language.) 3s. fid. per 100. 8a. Prayer under Sanctified Affliction Prayer under deep Sorrow for Sin 2s. fid per 100. 9. Morning Prayer for a Family Evening Prayer for a Family 3s. fid. per 100. 10. Prayer in Sickness and Affliction A Family Prayer 3s. fid. per 100. 11.. A Prayer for one in Trouble 3s. fid. per 100. 12. A Morning Prayer (short) An Evening Prayer Is. 9d. per 100. A Prayer against Intemperance 3s. fid. per 100. Prayer for the Inmates of a Workhouse 3s. fid. per 100. Also Two Dozen of the Series sorted, lOd.
SKCONZ)
Two
nCIIililON'
OF THE SEBIES.
dozen sent post free, No. 1, 1a, a7id 12, sixpmce ; No. 2, 3, and 8a, ninepence. No. 4 to 11, inclusive or sorted, one shilling.
Admonition Cards,
others.
with
Words
of Counsel by Bev.
No.
1.
2.
3,
4. 5. 6.
7.
Scripture
8.
9.
Truth ; The way of Salvation. God is Love. The Every Day Card. For the Love of Christ constraineth The Broad and the Narrow Way. ,. Fear Not. The Good Physician.
us.
Cecil.
Is. 2d.
per dozen
or sorted
Is.
3d.
I!
FACtLfTy
iniiiii A 000
137 147
5
"
'
im
^:h::?^